Selected quad for the lemma: sense_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
sense_n catholic_n church_n universal_a 1,773 5 9.0565 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A62548 A treatise of religion and governmemt [sic] with reflexions vpon the cause and cure of Englands late distempers and present dangersĀ· The argument vvhether Protestancy is less dangerous to the soul, or more advantagious to the state, then the Roman Catholick religion? The conclusion that piety and policy are mistaken in promoting Protestancy, and persecuting Popery by penal and sanguinary statuts. Wilson, John, M.A. 1670 (1670) Wing T118; ESTC R223760 471,564 687

There are 28 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

reasonable_a subjection_n 1127._o therefore_o beside_o many_o other_o work_n in_o the_o year_n 1520._o luther_n write_v a_o book_n call_v praeludium_fw-la captivitatis_fw-la babilonicae_fw-la wherein_o he_o maintain_v that_o christian_n be_v not_o subject_a to_o human_a law_n at_o least_o in_o foro_fw-la conscintiae_fw-la christ_n have_v make_v they_o all_o equal_a by_o the_o gospel_n but_o that_o the_o pope_n prelate_n and_o prince_n have_v tyranical_o usurp_v a_o jurisdiction_n over_o they_o and_o keep_v they_o for_o many_o year_n in_o gross_a ignorance_n and_o worse_a than_o in_o a_o babylonian_a captivity_n therefore_o that_o god_n have_v send_v he_o to_o reform_v these_o abuse_n and_o restore_v unto_o all_o oppress_a people_n the_o christian_a liberty_n which_o they_o have_v receive_v in_o baptism_n and_o by_o his_o reformation_n they_o may_v enjoy_v so_o full_o as_o to_o judge_n and_o govern_v all_o omne_fw-la judicemus_fw-la &_o regamus_fw-la then_o he_o publish_v his_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o only_a faith_n so_o resolut_o that_o he_o doubt_v not_o to_o preach_v though_o man_n word_n be_v the_o great_a blasphemy_n and_o their_o work_n the_o most_o damnable_a villainy_n if_o they_o have_v as_o much_o confidence_n to_o believe_v without_o doubt_n as_o impudence_n to_o act_v without_o scruple_n they_o may_v be_v sure_a that_o god_n have_v receive_v they_o into_o his_o favour_n and_o can_v be_v damn_v unless_o they_o doubt_v of_o their_o salvation_n this_o abominable_a presumption_n luther_n himself_o ground_v upon_o the_o infinitness_n of_o christ_n merit_n as_o if_o forsooth_o our_o saviour_n have_v suffer_v to_o the_o end_n we_o may_v not_o only_o be_v happy_a in_o heaven_n but_o by_o his_o passion_n hah_o warant_v our_o wickedness_n upon_o earth_n gross_o mistake_v and_o confound_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o christ_n merit_n with_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o their_o application_n none_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o least_o drop_n of_o our_o saviour_n blood_n be_v sufficient_a to_o redeem_v million_o of_o world_n because_o it_o be_v of_o infinite_a value_n but_o all_o catholic_n ever_o hold_v that_o though_o his_o blood_n and_o merit_n be_v infinite_o sufficient_a in_o themselves_o yet_o be_v they_o not_o sufficient_o apply_v to_o sinner_n unless_o they_o concur_v to_o their_o own_o reconciliation_n and_o justification_n not_o only_o by_o faith_n but_o by_o good_a work_n sacrament_n and_o other_o mean_n which_o god_n have_v appoint_v for_o that_o purpose_n yet_o luther_n pretend_v that_o faith_n alone_o be_v a_o sufficient_a application_n of_o christ_n merit_n and_o that_o man_n need_v not_o mortify_v their_o body_n nor_o endeavour_n to_o secure_v their_o salvation_n by_o good_a work_n think_v it_o a_o diminution_n of_o our_o redeemer_n glory_n and_o a_o disrespect_n to_o his_o person_n that_o with_o our_o free_a will_v we_o shall_v cooperat_fw-la with_o his_o passion_n and_o help_v ourselves_o and_o upon_o this_o ground_n do_v protestant_n raise_v all_o their_o battery_n against_o indulgence_n purgatory_n pilgrimage_n pray_v to_o saint_n confession_n of_o sin_n penance_n satisfaction_n merit_n austerity_n of_o monastical_a life_n work_v of_o supererogation_n etc._n etc._n a_o reformation_n so_o indulgent_a to_o liberty_n and_o sensuality_n can_v not_o want_v proselit_n and_o in_o a_o short_a time_n appear_v the_o effect_n thereof_o the_o peasant_n of_o germany_n rebel_v against_o their_o prince_n and_o lord_n in_o defence_n of_o that_o euangelical_n liberty_n which_o luther_n have_v preach_v and_o in_o the_o space_n of_o one_o summer_n be_v on_o both_o side_n a_o hundred_o thousand_o man_n slay_v some_o prince_n to_o make_v themselves_o considerable_a by_o head_v the_o multitud_n which_o run_v to_o luther_n profess_v his_o religion_n and_o protect_v his_o person_n and_o he_o lay_v for_o the_o foundation_n of_o his_o reformation_n the_o ensue_a principle_n subsect_n i._o the_o fundamental_a principle_n of_o protestancy_n the_o first_o principle_n and_o foundation_n of_o luther_n and_o of_o all_o protestant_a reformation_n be_v a_o supposition_n that_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n fall_v from_o that_o primitive_a pure_a doctrine_n and_o true_a meaning_n of_o scripture_n which_o christ_n our_o saviour_n and_o the_o apostle_n have_v plant_v and_o the_o first_o christian_n have_v profess_v all_o reform_v church_n do_v and_o must_v agree_v in_o this_o supposition_n the_o very_a name_n of_o a_o doctrinal_a reformation_n imply_v a_o change_n and_o decay_v of_o doctrine_n though_o they_o disagree_v in_o the_o time_n and_o other_o circumstance_n of_o the_o change_n until_o luther_n have_v confer_v with_o the_o devil_n he_o dare_v not_o vent_v this_o principle_n he_o appeal_v indeed_o from_o the_o pope_n to_o a_o general_a council_n and_o from_o a_o general_a council_n when_o he_o perceive_v one_o be_v summon_v to_o the_o church_n diffusive_a but_o after_o his_o conference_n with_o satan_n he_o venture_v to_o say_v 153._o lay_v aside_o all_o the_o arm_n of_o orthodox_n antiquity_n school_n of_o divinity_n authority_n of_o counsel_n and_o pope_n consent_n of_o so_o many_o age_n and_o all_o christian_a people_n we_o receive_v nothing_o but_o scripture_n yet_o so_o that_o we_o must_v have_v the_o certain_a authority_n to_o interpret_v the_o same_o our_o interpretation_n be_v the_o sense_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o which_o other_o bring_v though_o they_o be_v great_a though_o many_o proceed_v from_o the_o spirit_n of_o satan_n and_o from_o a_o distract_a mind_n the_o reason_n why_o luther_n and_o all_o protestant_n run_v this_o desperate_a course_n be_v because_o have_v examine_v and_o find_v that_o orthodox_n antiquity_n be_v roman_a catholic_n and_o not_o one_o church_n parish_n or_o person_n ever_o protestant_a before_o 1517._o they_o be_v enforce_v to_o maintain_v by_o misinterpreting_a scripture_n that_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n err_v and_o that_o god_n send_v they_o to_o reform_v it_o the_o second_o principle_n of_o protestancy_n be_v to_o admit_v of_o no_o rule_n of_o faith_n but_o only_a scripture_n of_o no_o other_o infallible_a judge_n of_o the_o letter_n or_o sense_n of_o scripture_n or_o of_o any_o controversy_n in_o religion_n but_o every_o particular_a country_n church_n and_o person_n interpret_n scripture_n according_a to_o their_o best_a endeavour_n and_o discretion_n this_o be_v express_o declare_v in_o the_o last_o mention_v word_n of_o luther_n and_o inculcate_v by_o the_o devil_n to_o he_o in_o his_o conference_n and_o though_o few_o be_v willing_a to_o speak_v the_o same_o word_n yet_o be_v there_o not_o one_o protestant_a in_o the_o world_n that_o do_v not_o practice_v the_o very_a same_o doctrine_n and_o defend_v it_o when_o the_o matter_n be_v argue_v it_o necessary_o follow_v from_o the_o first_o principle_n because_o if_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n fall_v from_o the_o pure_a faith_n and_o from_o god_n meaning_n of_o scripture_n the_o belief_n tradition_n and_o testimony_n of_o that_o visible_a church_n council_n and_o father_n can_v be_v no_o true_a rule_n of_o faith_n nor_o themselves_o fit_a judge_n of_o religion_n or_o of_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n therefore_o every_o private_a protestant_n must_v be_v his_o own_o guide_n and_o judge_n in_o matter_n of_o salvation_n and_o scripture_n for_o though_o luther_n calvin_n or_o any_o protestant_a congregation_n shall_v pretend_v that_o their_o sense_n and_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n be_v that_o of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o interpretation_n of_o other_o diabolical_a yet_o no_o private_a protestant_n do_v look_v even_o upon_o their_o own_o reformer_n or_o church_n as_o infallible_a in_o this_o or_o in_o any_o other_o particular_a but_o in_o as_o much_o as_o he_o judge_n it_o agree_v with_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o every_o one_o that_o suppose_v the_o fall_n of_o the_o roman_n catholik_n and_o visible_a church_n and_o the_o fallibility_n of_o the_o reformer_n and_o reformation_n as_o all_o protestant_n acknowledge_v do_v will_v deny_v that_o him-self_n have_v any_o obligation_n to_o submit_v his_o judgement_n in_o controversy_n of_o religion_n to_o any_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n or_o decision_n of_o doctrine_n beside_o his_o own_o and_o so_o become_v his_o own_o guide_n and_o his_o own_o judge_n of_o controversy_n and_o make_v his_o own_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n his_o only_a rule_n of_o faith_n say_v the_o three_o principle_n of_o protestancy_n be_v that_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o only_a faith_n and_o that_o he_o who_o have_v once_o justify_v faith_n can_v neither_o loose_v it_o nor_o be_v damn_v this_o tenet_n be_v clear_o profess_v as_o the_o doctrine_n of_o all_o protestant_a church_n in_o the_o catholic_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n art_n 11._o pag._n 5●_n &_o seqq_n and_o pag._n 54._o the_o papist_n be_v declare_v heretic_n for_o hold_v that_o man_n be_v to_o remain_v doubtful_a whether_o they_o shall_v be_v save_v or_o not_o from_o these_o principle_n flow_v that_o infinite_a variety_n of_o protestant_a religion_n
every_o day_n rather_o loose_v then_o gain_v ground_n and_o the_o generality_n of_o these_o nation_n can_v not_o be_v wrought_v upon_o either_o by_o fair_a or_o foul_a mean_n to_o think_v well_o of_o that_o religion_n or_o to_o submit_v their_o judgement_n and_o conscience_n to_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o prelatic_a ministry_n the_o reason_n be_v obvious_a to_o such_o as_o be_v not_o obstinate_a 1._o the_o incredibility_n of_o their_o pretend_v spiritual_a character_n and_o jurisdiction_n 2._o the_o incoherency_n of_o their_o doctrine_n with_o the_o fundamental_a principle_n of_o protestancy_n their_o episcopal_a character_n and_o jurisdiction_n be_v as_o incredible_a as_o king_n henry_n 8._o spiritual_a supremacy_n queen_n elizabeth_n legitimacy_n and_o the_o validity_n and_o solemnity_n of_o their_o first_o bishop_n consecration_n they_o have_v indeed_o of_o late_o endeavour_v to_o excuse_v the_o latness_n of_o their_o masonian_n register_n discovery_n england_n and_o to_o clear_v they_o from_o the_o suspicion_n of_o forgery_n but_o so_o faint_o and_o fraudulent_o that_o their_o vindication_n though_o pen_v and_o publish_v by_o on_o of_o the_o able_a prelate_n of_o their_o church_n have_v furnish_v their_o adversary_n with_o so_o many_o new_a demonstration_n against_o their_o character_n that_o in_o steed_n of_o a_o reply_n the_o protestant_a bishop_n have_v resolve_v upon_o a_o submission_n to_o the_o evidence_n of_o our_o argument_n and_o change_v the_o controvert_v and_o essential_a part_n of_o their_o form_n of_o ordination_n as_o they_o endeavour_v of_o late_a to_o vindicat_fw-la their_o register_n from_o forgery_n so_o they_o long_o since_o explain_v the_o queen_n supremacy_n but_o so_o contrary_a to_o the_o know_a law_n of_o the_o land_n and_o clear_a word_n of_o their_o oath_n both_o of_o supremacy_n and_o episcopal_a homage_n that_o neither_o can_v bear_v their_o fond_a interpretation_n and_o if_o they_o can_v the_o bishop_n will_v have_v nothing_o to_o show_v for_o their_o pretend_a spiritual_a function_n and_o jurisdiction_n it_o be_v manifest_a they_o can_v deduce_v either_o of_o they_o by_o succession_n from_o any_o apostolic_a church_n or_o orthodox_n council_n and_o therefore_o must_v content_v them-selve_n with_o what_o they_o can_v buy_v from_o a_o lay_v sovereign_a and_o temporal_a statute_n or_o acknowledge_v the_o truth_n and_o confess_v ingenious_o they_o be_v but_o lay-man_n and_o have_v no_o lawful_a authority_n to_o take_v upon_o they_o a_o spiritual_a function_n and_o jurisdiction_n see_v they_o have_v no_o catholic_n predecessor_n and_o degenerate_v from_o the_o first_o protestant_n reformer_n and_o be_v ashamed_a to_o claim_v with_o presbiterian_o and_o fanatic_n the_o extravagancy_n of_o a_o private_a spirit_n and_o extraordinary_a vocation_n the_o incoherency_n also_o of_o the_o prelatic_a doctrine_n make_v these_o nation_n averse_a from_o the_o prelatic_a church_n and_o clergy_n ●n_v the_o 39_o article_n of_o religion_n they_o declare_v with_o luther_n and_o the_o first_o reformer_n that_o no_o visible_a sign_n or_o ceremony_n and_o by_o consequence_n no_o such_o thing_n as_o imposition_n of_o episcopal_a hand_n be_v institute_v by_o christ_n or_o be_v the_o necessary_a matter_n of_o a_o priest_n and_o bishop_n ordination_n and_o yet_o now_o of_o late_a that_o visible_a sign_n and_o ceremony_n be_v hold_v by_o them-selve_n to_o be_v so_o essential_a that_o without_o the_o same_o no_o character_n of_o priesthood_n or_o episcopacy_n be_v think_v to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o party_n ordain_v and_o therefore_o they_o reordain_v such_o presbiterian_a minister_n as_o do_v neglect_v or_o contemn_v imposition_n of_o episcopal_a hand_n 2._o they_o maintain_v in_o the_o same_o 39_o article_n that_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n have_v fall_v into_o damnable_a error_n and_o acknowledge_v that_o only_o such_o a_o fall_n can_v justify_v the_o protestant_n separation_n or_o excuse_v they_o from_o sin_n and_o schism_n and_o yet_o when_o they_o be_v press_v with_o a_o consequence_n that_o necessary_o follow_v out_o of_o this_o supposition_n to_o wit_n that_o if_o the_o roman_a and_o visible_a church_n have_v so_o err_v protestant_n can_v have_v no_o christian_a faith_n nor_o certainty_n of_o the_o scriptur_n being_n god_n word_n or_o of_o the_o trinity_n and_o incarnation_n etc._n etc._n which_o they_o receive_v and_o retain_v upon_o the_o sole_a testimony_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n have_v in_o their_o own_o 39_o article_n declare_v the_o greeck_n church_n heretical_a for_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n procession_n and_o therefore_o it_o be_v testimony_n even_o in_o other_o article_n be_v invalid_a and_o its_o concurrence_n in_o those_o other_o article_n with_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v unsignificant_a and_o yet_o they_o again_o contradict_v them-selve_n and_o confess_v that_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n be_v infalible_a in_o all_o article_n necessary_a for_o salvation_n 3._o the_o same_o inconstancy_n and_o incoherency_n they_o show_v in_o deny_v that_o doctrinal_a tradition_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o that_o tradition_n itself_o be_v a_o sufficient_a ground_n of_o divine_a belief_n and_o yet_o when_o they_o be_v demand_v to_o show_v a_o proof_n by_o clear_a scripture_n of_o the_o distinction_n between_o single_a priesthood_n and_o episcopacy_n u.g._n than_o they_o maintain_v that_o traditional_a doctrine_n be_v god_n word_n and_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o roman_a visisible_a church_n a_o sufficient_a evidence_n thereof_o their_o waver_a and_o inconsequent_a way_n of_o proceed_v do_v manifest_a to_o the_o world_n that_o as_o well_o in_o this_o as_o in_o other_o particular_n of_o christian_a religion_n nay_o even_o in_o declare_v which_o be_v necessary_a or_o not_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n the_o prelatic_a clergy_n have_v a_o great_a regard_n to_o their_o own_o conveniency_n then_o to_o god_n veracity_n and_o to_o the_o revenue_n of_o ●he_n church_n then_o to_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n otherwise_o why_o shall_v they_o take_v our_o roman_a catholic_n word_n for_o episcopacy_n and_o not_o for_o the_o pop_n supremacy_n for_o the_o letter_n but_o not_o for_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n for_o not_o rebaptise_v or_o for_o receive_v relapse_v penitent_n more_o than_o for_o purgatory_n or_o transubstantiation_n or_o for_o keep_v sunday_n and_o not_o pray_v to_o saint_n etc._n etc._n see_v all_o these_o doctrine_n be_v equa_o propose_v to_o they_o as_o catholic_n truth_n by_o the_o sole_a credible_a testimony_n and_o tradition_n of_o our_o one_o and_o the_o same_o roman_n catholic_n church_n the_o testimony_n of_o the_o greeck_n and_o all_o other_o church_n as_o have_v be_v say_v be_v render_v invalid_a by_o the_o heretic_n wherwhith_fw-mi protestant_n confess_v they_o be_v infect_v some_o be_v of_o opinion_n that_o if_o the_o more_o modern_a prelaticks_n have_v not_o forsake_v their_o old_a way_n of_o be_v ordain_v bishop_n by_o the_o queen_n letter_n patent_n or_o by_o some_o such_o public_a testimony_n and_o superficial_a ceremony_n of_o their_o congregation_n without_o trouble_v them-selve_n with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o inward_a character_n give_v by_o imposition_n of_o episcopal_a hand_n so_o contrary_a to_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o reformation_n a_o broad_a and_o to_o the_o 23._o and_o 25._o of_o their_o own_o 39_o article_n at_o home_n they_o have_v not_o be_v so_o hard_o put_v to_o it_o by_o their_o presbiterian_a brethren_n argument_n who_o stick_v to_o the_o tenet_n and_o rule_n of_o pure_a and_o primitive_a protestancy_n detest_a those_o formality_n and_o dregs_o of_o popery_n which_o prelaticks_n of_o late_o have_v so_o much_o affect_v in_o ordain_v of_o minister_n mr._n hooker_n dr._n covel_n and_o some_o other_o prelaticks_n in_o their_o write_n towards_o the_o end_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n reign_n begin_v to_o inculcat_fw-la the_o doctrine_n of_o make_v ordination_n a_o spiritual_a character_n imprint_v in_o the_o soul_n by_o imposition_n of_o episcopal_a hand_n and_o not_o a_o bare_a formality_n of_o the_o secular_a magistrat_n election_n by_o some_o outward_a ceremony_n or_o letter_n patent_n as_o all_o english_a protestant_n have_v believe_v and_o practise_v until_o hooker_n and_o covel_n broach_v this_o among_o their_o other_o popish_a novelty_n and_o therefore_o be_v public_o blame_v and_o complain_v of_o by_o prelatic_a writer_n and_o particular_o by_o dr._n willet_n in_o his_o worck_n upon_o the_o 112._o psalm_n print_a 1603._o and_o dedicate_v to_o the_o queen_n majesty_n page_n 91._o he_o say_v from_o this_o fountain_n have_v spring_v forth_o these_o and_o such_o other_o whirlpoint_v and_o bubble_n of_o new_a doctrine_n and_o among_o other_o he_o set_v down_o as_o a_o novelty_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n this_o that_o there_o be_v in_o ordination_n give_v a_o indelible_a character_n and_o then_o add_v thus_o have_v some_o be_v bold_a to_o teach_v and_o write_v who_o as_o some_o schismatic_n the_o puritan_n have_v disturb_v the_o peace_n of_o the_o church_n one_o
holy_a doctor_n and_o then_o approve_v of_o by_o all_o the_o world_n and_o ever_o since_o accept_v and_o applaud_v in_o god_n church_n be_v defective_a or_o deceitful_a than_o a_o translation_n make_v since_o the_o pretend_a reformation_n by_o man_n not_o only_o engage_v in_o that_o new_a doctrine_n but_o maintain_v thereby_o and_o so_o addict_v to_o the_o pleasure_n and_o profit_n of_o this_o world_n as_o the_o first_o reformer_n and_o their_o successor_n the_o protestant_a clergy_n be_v know_v to_o be_v not_o only_o in_o england_n but_o in_o all_o other_o part_n of_o christendom_n let_v they_o be_v please_v also_o to_o consider_v whether_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n clergy_n in_o these_o kingdom_n who_o in_o be_v of_o that_o judgement_n can_v have_v no_o motive_n but_o conscience_n as_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o incapacity_n and_o penalty_n lay_v upon_o they_o for_o not_o conform_v to_o protestancy_n be_v not_o a_o more_o impartial_a and_o less_o to_o be_v suspect_v rule_n for_o any_o prudent_a person_n to_o follow_v than_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o protestant_a clergy_n reward_v and_o promote_v to_o the_o great_a employment_n both_o in_o church_n and_o state_n for_o be_v of_o that_o opinion_n they_o profess_v and_o who_o will_v forfeit_v all_o their_o be_v if_o they_o declare_v them-selve_n contrary_a to_o protestancy_n this_o be_v as_o mature_o and_o impartial_o consider_v as_o the_o importance_n of_o the_o matter_n do_v require_v none_o will_v believe_v that_o the_o vulgar_a translation_n make_v by_o protestant_n be_v holy_a scripture_n they_o be_v so_o contrary_a to_o our_o vulgata_fw-la in_o latin_a translate_v out_o of_o the_o true_a greeck_n and_o hebrew_n copy_n write_v first_o by_o a_o holy_a martyr_n and_o after_o revew_v by_o a_o st._n who_o sincerity_n and_o learning_n be_v sufficient_a to_o canonize_v his_o translation_n have_v it_o not_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o most_o holy_a of_o itself_o and_o so_o declare_v by_o the_o testimony_n and_o approbation_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 1200._o year_n before_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n in_o vain_a therefore_o do_v protestant_a writer_n tell_v we_o that_o thei●_n translation_n be_v take_v immediate_o from_o the_o fountain_n of_o the_o greek_a and_o hebrew_n so_o be_v our_o vulgata_fw-la only_a with_o this_o difference_n that_o we_o be_v take_v from_o the_o fountain_n when_o they_o be_v clear_a and_o by_o holy_a and_o learned_a man_n that_o know_v which_o be_v the_o crystal_n water_n and_o true_a copy_n but_o they_o be_v take_v from_o fountain_n of_o troubleed_n water_n by_o lewd_a and_o vicious_a person_n and_o after_o that_o the_o arian_n and_o other_o heretic_n have_v poison_v and_o corrupt_v they_o with_o their_o false_a and_o filthy_a doctrine_n thus_o much_o against_o the_o protestant_a letter_n of_o scripture_n now_o to_o their_o sense_n of_o scripture_n sect_n v._o the_o protestant_a interpretation_n be_v not_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n the_o principal_a part_n and_o as_o it_o be_v the_o soul_n of_o scripture_n be_v the_o sense_n which_o be_v deliver_v to_o the_o church_n together_o with_o the_o letter_n for_o as_o st._n hierom_n in_o ep_n ad_fw-la galat._n say_v the_o gospel_n be_v not_o in_o the_o word_n but_o in_o the_o sense_n not_o in_o the_o bark_n but_o in_o the_o sapp_n not_o in_o the_o leaf_n of_o the_o word_n but_o in_o the_o root_n of_o the_o meaning_n so_o that_o though_o we_o shall_v grant_v the_o protestant_a translation_n to_o be_v true_a yet_o if_o we_o prove_v their_o interpretation_n false_a we_o demonstrat_fw-la they_o have_v no_o scripture_n nor_o the_o least_o pretext_n or_o colour_n for_o their_o reformation_n and_o first_o that_o the_o church_n receive_v together_o with_o the_o letter_n the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v as_o evident_a as_o it_o be_v that_o god_n will_v not_o speak_v word_n without_o sense_n or_o leave_v the_o interpretation_n of_o they_o to_o man_n who_o capacity_n reach_v not_o the_o mystery_n of_o religion_n contain_v in_o the_o word_n therefore_o our_o learned_a adversary_n be_v oblige_v to_o confess_v that_o no_o man_n doubt_v 35._o but_o that_o the_o primitive_a church_n receive_v from_o the_o apostle_n and_o apostolical_a man_n not_o only_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n but_o also_o the_o right_n and_o native_a sense_n thereof_o the_o dispute_n therefore_o between_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n be_v not_o whether_o the_o church_n ever_o receive_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n but_o whether_o that_o sense_n continue_v as_o well_o as_o the_o letter_n in_o the_o church_n and_o whether_o the_o interpretation_n of_o luther_n calvin_n cranmer_n hamond_n etc._n etc._n or_o of_o the_o prelaticks_n of_o england_n aught_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o that_o of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n because_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v suppose_v by_o all_o protestant_n to_o have_v be_v lose_v for_o many_o age_n and_o that_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n of_o god_n be_v either_o so_o careless_a as_o to_o forget_v the_o ancient_a sense_n or_o so_o wicked_a as_o to_o forge_v a_o new_a sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o first_o it_o seem_v against_o reason_n to_o believe_v that_o any_o christian_a congregation_n can_v be_v less_o careful_a of_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n then_o of_o the_o letter_n because_o the_o sense_n be_v that_o which_o import_v most_o for_o preservation_n of_o the_o faith_n therefore_o if_o the_o prelate_n and_o pastor_n of_o the_o church_n have_v be_v so_o watchful_a and_o diligent_a in_o all_o age_n as_o to_o find_v out_o and_o correct_v all_o heretical_a corruption_n of_o the_o letter_n of_o scripture_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a they_o will_v neglect_v the_o same_o industry_n for_o preservation_n of_o the_o sense_n which_o be_v the_o principal_a part_n of_o god_n word_n and_o if_o protestant_n think_v the_o letter_n be_v safe_a in_o the_o custody_n of_o the_o roman_n chatholick_n church_n from_o which_o they_o receive_v it_o how_o can_v they_o suspect_v the_o purity_n of_o that_o sense_n which_o be_v keep_v and_o deliver_v to_o they_o by_o the_o same_o church_n and_o authority_n and_o if_o god_n providence_n as_o they_o confess_v be_v engage_v in_o keep_v the_o leaf_n and_o letter_n of_o scripture_n from_o corruption_n sure_o it_o can_v not_o be_v so_o vnconcern_v for_o the_o integrity_n of_o the_o sense_n and_o substance_n as_o to_o permit_v it_o to_o perish_v beside_o it_o be_v much_o easy_a to_o keep_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n incorrupt_a and_o pure_a than_o the_o letter_n the_o letter_n be_v write_v only_o in_o paper_n or_o parchment_n the_o sense_n in_o the_o head_n and_o heart_n of_o the_o bishop_n doctor_n and_o people_n of_o the_o church_n a_o dash_n of_o a_o pen_n may_v alter_v the_o letter_n but_o can_v have_v access_n to_o the_o sense_n which_o lodge_v in_o the_o heart_n and_o head_n of_o the_o faithful_a the_o precept_n of_o receive_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n from_o the_o church_n be_v not_o only_o agreeable_a to_o reason_n but_o prescribe_v in_o scripture_n as_o the_o only_a way_n of_o salvation_n go_v not_o from_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o elder_n for_o they_o have_v learn_v it_o from_o their_o father_n and_o of_o they_o thou_o shall_v learn_v understanding_n and_o to_o answer_v in_o the_o time_n of_o need_n eccles._n 8.8_o the_o first_o protestant_n reformer_n observe_v not_o this_o they_o go_v to_o no_o precedent_a church_n nor_o father_n for_o their_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o the_o word_n of_o jeremy_n 18.15_o may_v be_v literal_o apply_v to_o they_o they_o have_v stumble_v from_o the_o ancient_a way_n to_o walk_v in_o way_n not_o tread_v the_o protestant_a clergy_n ought_v to_o say_v and_o confess_v ingenious_o that_o of_o holy_a job_n 8.8_o jnquire_v therefore_o i_o pray_v thou_o of_o the_o ancient_a generation_n and_o prepare_v thyself_o to_o search_v of_o their_o father_n for_o we_o be_v but_o yesterday_o and_o ought_v not_o intrude_v their_o own_o imagination_n as_o the_o true_a explanation_n of_o god_n word_n they_o do_v not_o imitat_fw-la st._n gregory_n nazianzen_n and_o st._n basil_n who_o as_o eusebius_n relate_v hist._n l._n 11._o cap._n 9_o do_v seek_v the_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n not_o from_o their_o own_o presumption_n but_o from_o the_o write_n and_o authority_n of_o their_o ancestor_n they_o do_v not_o follow_v the_o rule_n of_o origen_n say_v tract_n in_o math._n 29._o that_o in_o our_o understanding_n of_o the_o scripture_n we_o must_v not_o depart_v from_o the_o first_o ecclesiastical_a tradition_n nor_o believe_v otherwise_o but_o as_o the_o church_n of_o god_n have_v by_o succession_n deliver_v to_o we_o nor_o that_o of_o tertulian_n l._n 1._o de_fw-fr prescrip_n c._n 6._o what_o the_o apostle_n preach_v what_o christ_n reveal_v to_o they_o ought_v not_o be_v otherwise_o prove_v
then_o by_o the_o church_n which_o they_o plant_v gloriari_fw-la protestant_n contemn_v all_o these_o rule_n and_o because_o there_o be_v never_o any_o church_n in_o the_o world_n which_o profess_v the_o same_o faith_n that_o any_o of_o their_o reformer_n preach_v or_o them-selve_n now_o profess_v they_o be_v necessitate_v to_o except_v against_o all_o testimony_n of_o ancient_a father_n and_o counsel_n and_o against_o the_o continual_a and_o common_a consent_n of_o all_o christian_a church_n concern_v the_o proper_a sense_n of_o scripture_n deliver_v to_o the_o primitive_a christian_n and_o will_v be_v judge_v therein_o by_o none_o but_o by_o them-selve_n and_o by_o their_o own_o fancy_n of_o scripture_n they_o all_o follow_v this_o rule_n of_o luther_n the_o first_o reformer_n which_o he_o lay_v as_o the_o foundation_n of_o all_o protestant_a reformation_n the_o governor_n of_o church_n and_o pastor_n of_o christ_n sheep_n have_v indeed_o power_n to_o teach_v but_o the_o sheep_n must_v judge_n whether_o they_o propose_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n or_o of_o stranger_n etc._n etc._n wherefore_o let_v pope_n bishop_n counsel_n etc._n etc._n decree_n order_n enact_v what_o they_o please_v we_o shall_v not_o hinder_v but_o we_o who_o be_v christ_n sheep_n and_o hear_v his_o voice_n will_v judge_n whether_o they_o propose_v thing_n true_a and_o agreeable_a to_o the_o voice_n of_o our_o pastor_n and_o they_o must_v yield_v to_o we_o and_o subscribe_v and_o obey_v to_o our_o sentence_n and_o censure_n luther_n tom_n 2._o wittemb_v cap._n de_fw-fr sacra_fw-la script_n fol._n 375._o and_o because_o b._n p_o jewel_n in_o his_o challenge_n think_v that_o none_o dare_v answer_v or_o accept_v it_o appeal_v to_o the_o holy_a father_n of_o the_o first_o age_n and_o be_v thereupon_o immediate_o convict_v of_o hypocrisy_n and_o imposture_n he_o be_v grievous_o reprehend_v by_o his_o own_o prelatic_a brethren_n as_o injurious_a to_o him-self_n and_o as_o one_o who_o have_v give_v the_o papist_n too_o large_a a_o scope_n and_o after_o a_o manner_n spoil_v him-self_n and_o the_o church_n see_v doctor_n humphrey_n in_o jewel_n be_v life_n edit_n londin_n pag._n 212._o and_o the_o same_o also_o in_o fulk_n retentive_a against_o bristol_n pag._n 55._o ever_o since_o that_o foil_n the_o prelatik_n have_v be_v more_o wary_a and_o one_o of_o their_o great_a champion_n bilson_n bishop_n of_o winchester_n in_o his_o true_a difference_n between_o christian_a subjection_n etc._n etc._n part_n 2._o pag._n 353._o say_v in_o plain_a term_n the_o people_n must_v be_v discerner_n and_o judge_n of_o that_o which_o be_v teach_v how_o contrary_a to_o luther_n reformation_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o father_n we_o may_v judge_n by_o these_o word_n of_o gregory_n nazianzen_n in_o the_o oration_n wherein_o he_o excuse_v him-self_n for_o have_v be_v long_o absent_a from_o his_o flock_n and_o not_o exercise_v his_o function_n vos_fw-fr oves_fw-la nolite_fw-la pascere_fw-la pastor_n neque_fw-la super_fw-la terminos_fw-la eorum_fw-la elevamini_fw-la satis_fw-la enim_fw-la est_fw-la vobis_fw-la si_fw-la recte_fw-la pascimini_fw-la nolite_fw-la judicare_fw-la iudices_fw-la nec_fw-la legem_fw-la feratis_fw-la legislatoribus_a etc._n etc._n now_o let_v any_o man_n who_o have_v common_a sense_n be_v judge_n whether_o it_o be_v in_o the_o least_o degree_n probable_a that_o not_o only_o the_o illiterate_a protestant_n but_o even_o their_o great_a doctor_n and_o their_o first_o apostle_n luther_n calvin_n cranmer_n etc._n etc._n shall_v know_v better_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n that_o be_v deliver_v to_o the_o first_o age_n than_o they_o to_o who_o those_o of_o that_o age_n tell_v what_o they_o be_v teach_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n or_o then_o the_o second_o which_o tell_v the_o three_o what_o they_o be_v teach_v by_o the_o first_o and_o so_o from_o generation_n until_o luther_n and_o calvin_n tyme._n that_o every_o age_n give_v this_o favourable_a testimony_n to_o the_o subsequent_a of_o the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n which_o it_o deliver_v can_v not_o be_v deny_v otherwise_o none_o will_v have_v receive_v their_o sense_n of_o scripture_n or_o their_o doctrine_n as_o divine_a whether_o they_o be_v sincere_a in_o deliver_v their_o testimony_n be_v the_o question_n and_o because_o none_o question_n it_o but_o luther_n calvin_n etc._n etc._n and_o their_o follower_n until_o we_o see_v be_v ter_z evidence_n and_o a_o more_o clear_a cause_n of_o their_o reform_a principle_n and_o knowledge_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n apostasy_n than_o their_o private_a spirit_n or_o luther_n and_o calvin_n new_a and_o extravagant_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n we_o dare_v not_o condemn_v the_o whole_a ancient_a visible_a and_o catholic_n church_n nor_o concur_v with_o its_o declare_a enemy_n in_o so_o rash_a a_o judgement_n as_o to_o affirm_v that_o the_o church_n betray_v its_o trust_n and_o posterity_n which_o rash_a judgement_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o the_o protestant_a reformation_n s._n athanasius_n in_o lib._n de_fw-fr decretis_fw-la nicen._n synod_n contra_fw-la euseb._n ecce_fw-la nos_fw-la quidem_fw-la ex_fw-la patribus_fw-la ad_fw-la patres_fw-la per_fw-la manus_fw-la traditam_fw-la fuisse_fw-la hanc_fw-la sententiam_fw-la demonstravimus_fw-la vos_fw-la autem_fw-la o_fw-la novi_fw-la judaei_n caiphae_n silij_fw-la quos_fw-la tandem_fw-la nominum_fw-la vestrorum_fw-la potestis_fw-la ostendere_fw-la progenitores_fw-la s._n gregor_n nazian_n ep_n 2._o ab_fw-la chelid_n absconditam_fw-la post_fw-la christum_fw-la sapientiam_fw-la nobis_fw-la annunciant_fw-la rem_fw-la lacrymis_fw-la dignam_fw-la si_fw-la enim_fw-la triginta_fw-la his_fw-la annis_fw-la fides_fw-la originem_fw-la habuit_fw-la cum_fw-la quadringenti_fw-la now_o 1600._o fere_n anni_fw-la ab_fw-la eo_fw-la tempore_fw-la fluxerint_fw-la quo_fw-la christus_fw-la palam_fw-la conspectus_fw-la est_fw-la inane_fw-la tanto_fw-la tempore_fw-la fuit_fw-la evangelium_fw-la inanis_fw-la etiam_fw-la fides_fw-la nostra_fw-la &_o martyr_n quidem_fw-la frustra_fw-la martyrium_fw-la subierunt_fw-la frustra_fw-la etiam_fw-la tale_n tantique_fw-la antistites_fw-la populo_fw-la praefuerunt_fw-la st._n august_n de_fw-fr utilit_fw-la credendi_fw-la cap._n 14._o say_v to_o the_o manichee_n what_o we_o may_v to_o the_o protestant_a reformer_n vos_fw-fr autem_fw-la &_o tam_fw-la pauci_fw-la estis_fw-la &_o tam_fw-la turbulenti_fw-la &_o tam_fw-la novi_fw-la nemini_fw-la dubium_fw-la est_fw-la quoniam_fw-la nihil_fw-la dignum_fw-la autoritate_fw-la proferetis_fw-la see_v therefore_o the_o roman_n catholic_n sense_n of_o scripture_n have_v for_o the_o space_n of_o 1600._o year_n be_v deliver_v by_o the_o visible_a christian_a church_n from_o age_n to_o age_n as_o the_o true_a meaning_n of_o god_n word_n and_o that_o the_o protestant_a sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v never_o accept_v of_o by_o any_o but_o condemn_v heretic_n and_o even_o in_o this_o last_o age_n be_v deliver_v but_o by_o a_o few_o turbulent_a and_o disagree_a person_n and_o obnoxious_a ●o_o many_o exception_n much_o diminish_v the_o credibility_n of_o their_o testimony_n it_o be_v at_o least_o 16._o to_o one_o not_o only_o in_o the_o number_n but_o also_o in_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o witness_n that_o the_o roman_n catholic_n sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v true_a and_o the_o protestant_n false_a and_o by_o consequence_n the_o protestant_n have_v no_o scripture_n to_o maintain_v the_o doctrine_n wherein_o they_o differ_v from_o roman_a catholic_n sect_n vi_o protestant_n mistake_v in_o the_o ministry_n and_o mission_n of_o their_o clergy_n in_o the_o miracle_n of_o their_o church_n in_o the_o holiness_n and_o honesty_n of_o their_o reformer_n albeit_o god_n be_v able_a to_o call_v justify_v and_o confirm_v the_o elect_a without_o any_o mediate_v mean_n yet_o as_o protestant_n confess_v he_o be_v please_v not_o to_o accomplish_v the_o same_o otherwise_o then_o in_o and_o by_o the_o ministry_n of_o his_o church_n therefore_o s._n paul_n tell_v we_o ephes._n 4.11.12.13_o that_o christ_n have_v place_v in_o his_o church_n pastor_n and_o doctor_n to_o continue_v to_o the_o consummation_n of_o saint_n till_o we_o all_o meet_v in_o the_o unity_n of_o faith_n the_o chief_a of_o these_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n be_v the_o bishop_n unto_o who_o as_o the_o same_o apostle_n testify_v it_o belong_v to_o govern_v god_n church_n act._n c._n 2d_o these_o bishop_n must_v succeed_v not_o only_o in_o doctrine_n but_o in_o character_n to_o the_o apostle_n which_o character_n be_v the_o ordinary_a ministry_n or_o vocation_n discern_v and_o receive_v by_o imposition_n of_o episcopal_a hand_n 1._o tim._n 4._o but_o because_o luther_n be_v only_o a_o single_a priest_n and_o calvin_n as_o most_o say_v not_o so_o much_o as_o a_o priest_n and_o that_o both_o despair_v of_o episcopal_n and_o priestly_a succession_n they_o resolve_v to_o remedy_v that_o want_n by_o say_v that_o the_o character_n of_o priest_n and_o bishop_n be_v not_o distinct_a from_o that_o of_o baptism_n and_o whereas_o luther_n ordination_n or_o ordinary_a vocation_n in_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n be_v to_o preach_v the_o doctrine_n which_o he_o have_v receive_v from_o that_o church_n and_o not_o his_o new_a
by_o faith_n in_o christ_n not_o by_o good_a work_n which_o they_o in_o no_o wise_a do_v affect_v we_o catholic_n do_v not_o pretend_v to_o have_v no_o evill-liver_n in_o our_o church_n but_o this_o we_o may_v say_v with_o truth_n and_o i_o hope_v without_o offence_n that_o the_o difference_n between_o protestant_a and_o catholic_n ●●●ll-livers_n be_v that_o when_o protestant_n sin_n they_o do_v nothing_o but_o what_o they_o be_v encourage_v unto_o by_o their_o justify_v faith_n and_o the_o other_o principle_n of_o their_o religion_n but_o when_o catholic_n sin_n they_o go_v against_o the_o know_a tenet_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o profession_n even_o our_o pardon_n and_o jndulgence_n however_o so_o plenary_a be_v so_o far_o from_o encourage_v we_o to_o a_o continuance_n or_o relapse_n of_o sin_v that_o they_o involve_v as_o a_o precedent_n and_o necessary_a condition_n a_o serious_a and_o sincere_a repentance_n of_o our_o former_a offence_n and_o afirm_v purpose_n and_o resolution_n of_o never_o return_v to_o the_o like_a crime_n and_o after_o all_o be_v do_v we_o pretend_v to_o no_o such_o undoubted_a certainty_n of_o be_v pardon_v either_o by_o confession_n or_o indulgence_n because_o we_o be_v not_o certain_a whether_o we_o do_v all_o as_o we_o ought_v as_o protestant_n presume_v to_o have_v of_o their_o justification_n and_o salvation_n by_o only_a faith_n the_o nature_n of_o this_o justify_v faith_n and_o of_o other_o protestant_a principle_n consider_v we_o catholic_n have_v reason_n to_o thank_v god_n that_o the_o prudence_n ●f_n the_o prince_n and_o moderation_n of_o his_o minister_n be_v so_o extraordinary_a that_o it_o keep_v the_o indiscreed_a zeal_n of_o a_o multitude_n so_o strange_o principled_a if_o not_o as_o much_o with_o in_o the_o limit_n of_o christianity_n and_o civility_n towards_o their_o fellow_n subject_n as_o be_v to_o be_v wish_v yet_o so_o that_o the_o execution_n of_o the_o sanguinary_a and_o penal_a statute_n be_v not_o altogether_o so_o destructive_a as_o the_o presbiterian_o and_o other_o endeavour_n until_o the_o generality_n of_o these_o nation_n reflect_v upon_o the_o impiety_n of_o the_o first_o reformer_n and_o upon_o their_o own_o mistake_n in_o prefer_v the_o mad_a fancy_n of_o a_o few_o dissolute_a friar_n concern_v the_o nature_n of_o christian_a faith_n before_o the_o constant_a testimony_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n we_o can_v expect_v that_o they_o who_o govern_v so_o mistake_v a_o multitude_n can_v make_v justice_n the_o rule_n of_o the_o public_a decree_n which_o depend_v of_o the_o concurrence_n and_o acceptance_n of_o man_n who_o great_a care_n be_v to_o promote_v protestancy_n and_o persecute_v popery_n sect_n ix_o protestant_n mistake_v in_o the_o consistency_n of_o christian_a faith_n humility_n charity_n peace_n either_o in_o church_n or_o state_n with_o their_o make_a scripture_n as_o interpret_v by_o private_a person_n or_o fallible_a synod_n or_o fancy_v general_a counsel_n compose_v of_o all_o discenting_a christian_a church_n the_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o judge_n of_o controversy_n in_o religion_n how_o every_o protestant_n be_v a_o pope_n and_o how_o much_o also_o they_o be_v oversee_v in_o make_v the_o 39_o article_n or_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n a_o distinctive_a sign_n of_o loyalty_n to_o our_o protestant_a king_n lvther_o zuinglius_fw-la calvin_n cranmer_n and_o all_o other_o that_o pretend_v to_o reform_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n see_v they_o can_v not_o prove_v their_o new_a religion_n or_o reformation_n by_o testimony_n from_o antiquity_n or_o by_o probability_n of_o reason_n be_v enforce_v to_o imitat_fw-la the_o example_n of_o all_o heretic_n who_o as_o s._n austin_n say_v l._n 1._o de_fw-fr trin._n c._n 3._o endeavour_v to_o defend_v their_o fall_n and_o deceitful_a opinion_n out_o of_o the_o scripture_n if_o on_o shall_v ask_v any_o heretic_n say_v that_o ancient_a father_n vincentius_n lyr_n l._n 1._o cons_n haer._n c._n 35._o from_o whence_o do_v you_o prove_v from_o whence_o do_v you_o teach_v that_o i_o ought_v to_o forsake_v the_o universal_a and_o ancient_a faith_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n present_o he_o answer_v scriptum_fw-la est_fw-la it_o be_v write_v and_o forthwith_o he_o prepare_v a_o thousand_o testimony_n a_o thousand_o example_n a_o thousand_o authority_n from_o the_o law_n from_o the_o apostle_n from_o the_o prophet_n this_o shift_n be_v so_o ordinary_a and_o notorious_a that_o luther_n him-self_n postill_a wittenberg_n in_o 2._o con_v 8._o dom._n post_n trin._n fol._n 118._o dom._n post_n trin._n fol._n 118._o affirm_v the_o sacred_a scripture_n be_v the_o book_n of_o heretic_n because_o heretic_n be_v accustom_v to_o appeal_v to_o that_o book_n neither_o do_v there_o arise_v at_o any_o time_n any_o heresy_n so_o pestiferous_a and_o so_o foolish_a which_o do_v not_o endeavour_v to_o hide_v itself_o under_o the_o veil_n of_o scripture_n and_o yet_o luther_n calvin_n cranmer_n etc._n etc._n find_v nothing_o to_o say_v for_o them-selve_n either_o in_o history_n or_o father_n and_o see_v tradition_n so_o clear_o bend_v against_o they_o that_o they_o can_v not_o name_v as_o much_o as_o on_o parish_n or_o person_n which_o ever_o profess_v their_o protestant_n doctrine_n they_o appeal_v from_o the_o word_n of_o god_n propose_v by_o the_o visible_a and_o catholic_n church_n and_o coun●●ls_n to_o their_o own_o canon_n and_o translation_n of_o scripture_n and_o from_o that_o sense_n of_o scripture_n which_o the_o church_n and_o counsel_n have_v follow_v for_o 1500._o year_n to_o that_o which_o their_o own_o private_a spirit_n temporal_a interest_n or_o fallacious_a reason_n di●●●ted_v to_o them-selve_n and_o so_o do_v other_o that_o follow_v their_o example_n make_v every_o private_a protestant_n or_o at_o least_o every_o reform_a congregation_n judge_n of_o scripture_n church_n counsel_n and_o father_n in_o so_o much_o that_o luther_n tom_n 2._o wittenberg_n cap._n de_fw-fr sacram._n fol._n 375._o set_v down_o this_o rule_n for_o all_o protestant_n to_o be_v direct_v 〈◊〉_d the_o governor_n of_o church_n and_o pastor_n of_o christ_n sheep_n 〈◊〉_d indeed_o power_n to_o teach_v but_o the_o sheep_n must_v judge_v wh●●●er_o they_o propose_v the_o voice_n of_o christ_n 〈◊〉_d of_o stranger_n etc._n etc._n wherefore_o let_v pope_n bishop_n counsel_n etc._n etc._n decree_n order_n enact_v what_o they_o please_v we_o shall_v not_o hinder_v but_o we_o who_o be_v christ_n sheep_n and_o hear_v his_o voice_n will_v judge_v whether_o they_o propose_v thing_n true_a and_o agreeable_a to_o the_o voice_n of_o our_o pastor_n and_o they_o must_v yield_v to_o we_o and_o subscribe_v and_o obey_v our_o sentence_n and_o censure_n calvin_n though_o contrary_a to_o luth●●_n in_o many_o other_o thing_n yet_o in_o this_o do_v agree_v as_o be_v the_o ground_n whereupon_o all_o protestant_n reformation_n must_v rely_v in_o his_o lib._n 4._o institut_n cap._n 9_o §_o 8._o he_o say_v the_o definition_n of_o counsel_n must_v be_v examine_v by_o scripture_n and_o scripture_n interpret_v by_o his_o rule_n and_o spirit_n the_o same_o be_v maintain_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o appear_v in_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o 39_o article_n print_v by_o authority_n 1633._o wherein_o it_o be_v say_v pag._n 103._o authority_n be_v give_v to_o the_o church_n and_o to_o every_o member_n of_o sound_a judgement_n in_o the_o same_o to_o judge_v controversy_n of_o faith_n etc._n etc._n and_o this_o be_v not_o the_o private_a opinion_n of_o our_o church_n but_o also_o the_o judgement_n of_o our_o godly_a brethren_n in_o foreign_a nation_n and_o by_o mr._n bilson_n bishop_n of_o winchester_n in_o his_o true_a difference_n etc._n etc._n part_n 2._o pag._n 353._o the_o people_n must_v be_v discerner_n and_o judge_n of_o that_o which_o be_v teach_v how_o inconsistent_a this_o doctrine_n be_v with_o christian_a faith_n be_v evident_a by_o the_o pretend_a fallibility_n and_o fall_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n which_o all_o protestant_n do_v suppose_v and_o must_v maintain_v to_o make_v good_a the_o necessity_n and_o lawfullness_n of_o their_o own_o interpretation_n and_o reformation_n for_o if_o the_o roman_n catholik_n and_o ever_o visible_a church_n may_v and_o from_o time_n to_o time_n have_v err_v as_o the_o church_n of_o england_n declare_v in_o the_o 39_o article_n no_o reform_v congregation_n whether_o lutheran_n presbiterian_a or_o prelatic_a can_v have_v infallible_a certainty_n but_o that_o them-selve_n have_v fall_v into_o as_o great_a error_n as_o those_o which_o they_o have_v pretend_v to_o reform_v in_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o if_o they_o have_v not_o infallible_a certainty_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o their_o reform_a doctrine_n they_o can_v not_o pretend_v to_o christianity_n of_o faith_n that_o involve_v a_o assurance_n of_o truth_n which_o assurance_n be_v impossible_a if_o that_o the_o church_n can_v be_v mistake_v in_o its_o proposal_n so_o that_o christianity_n of_o faith_n include_v
when_o certain_a officer_n know_v by_o the_o usual_a mark_n and_o badge_n of_o their_o master_n sovereignty_n and_o their_o own_o military_a or_o civil_a charge_n propose_v his_o order_n either_o by_o proclamation_n letters_z patent_n or_o otherwise_o so_o protestant_n will_v acknowledge_v that_o all_o christian_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v it_o i●_n a_o sufficient_a proposal_n of_o the_o 〈◊〉_d existence_n of_o divine_a revelation_n and_o that_o god_n speak_v or_o command_v whensoever_o his_o mind_n be_v declare_v to_o they_o by_o that_o church_n and_o minister_n who_o bear_v at_o least_o as_o authentic_a mark_n and_o badge_n of_o god_n authority_n and_o of_o their_o own_o ministry_n to_o evidence_n their_o trust_n and_o jurisdiction_n as_o the_o officer_n of_o state_n and_o justice_n do_v in_o a_o republic_n or_o 〈◊〉_d government_n in_o a_o word_n all_o that_o we_o desire_v of_o protestant_n be_v that_o they_o will_v give_v as_o much_o credit_n and_o respect_n to_o god_n as_o to_o prince_n and_o no_o less_o to_o the_o minister_n of_o god_n church_n then_o to_o senator_n or_o to_o the_o officer_n of_o a_o king_n court._n but_o their_o fundamental_a distinction_n dispense_v with_o all_o such_o duty_n and_o lead_v they_o a_o quite_o contrary_a way_n 〈…〉_z not_o oblige_v to_o believe_v the_o mystery_n of_o faith_n as_o they_o be_v propose_v by_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n though_o the_o say_a church_n be_v more_o authentical_o warant_v thereunto_o by_o god_n then_o any_o minister_n or_o magistral_a be_v warant_v to_o 〈…〉_z of_o state_n by_o their_o prince_n unless_o it_o be_v clear_o evident_a 〈…〉_z evident_o credible_a will_v not_o serve_v their_o turn_n that_o god_n reveal_v what_o the_o church_n propose_v as_o his_o word_n and_o command_n such_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n as_o they_o fancy_v clear_a or_o self_n evident_a either_o by_o their_o own_o private_a spirit_n and_o discourse_n or_o by_o the_o unanimous_a and_o general_a acknowledgement_n of_o all_o christian_n such_o and_o only_o such_o do_v protestant_n believe_v as_o point_n of_o faith_n and_o call_v they_o fundamental_a article_n or_o article_n necessary_a for_o salvation_n all_o other_o either_o they_o hold_v only_o as_o probable_a opinion_n and_o thing_n of_o indifferency_n or_o reject_v as_o superfluous_a and_o superstitious_a and_o because_o the_o mystery_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o incarnation_n be_v general_o profess_v in_o these_o part_n of_o europe_n by_o all_o christian_n though_o not_o by_o all_o in_o the_o catholic_n sense_n but_o with_o certain_a interpretation_n therefore_o the_o learned_a prelatic_a protestant_a writer_n both_o ancient_a and_o modern_a reduce_v all_o the_o article_n and_o the_o total_a sum_n of_o catholic_n faith_n and_o of_o the_o four_o first_o general_a counsel_n to_o a_o belief_n of_o the_o trinity_n and_o incarnation_n that_o be_v to_o some_o kind_a of_o faith_n though_o it_o be_v but_o the_o arian_n in_o jesus_n christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n dubl_n and_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n as_o doctor_n morton_n bishop_n of_o duresme_fw-fr and_o other_o teach_v who_o upon_o this_o score_n maintain_v that_o the_o arian_n church_n and_o by_o consequence_n all_o ancient_a heretic_n be_v to_o be_v accounpt_v member_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n we_o have_v quote_v their_o word_n numb_a 3._o of_o the_o precedent_a section_n that_o no_o king_n minister_n or_o magistrate_n have_v so_o authentic_a mark_n and_o badge_n to_o evidence_n in_o them-selve_n their_o master_n authority_n for_o exercise_v their_o respective_a charge_n and_o jurisdiction_n as_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n have_v of_o be_v entrust_v and_o appoint_v by_o god_n to_o deliver_v his_o divine_a doctrine_n declare_v his_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o decide_v religious_a controversy_n be_v manifest_a by_o the_o sign_n and_o mark_n of_o god_n church_n compare_v with_o the_o mark_n and_o badge_n of_o prince_n officer_n omit_v many_o other_o mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n i_o will_v touch_v but_o three_o which_o be_v conversion_n of_o king_n and_o nation_n from_o paganism_n to_o christianity_n succession_n of_o pastor_n and_o doctrine_n from_o the_o apostle_n to_o this_o present_a and_o miracle_n all_o these_o be_v visible_a only_o in_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n and_o be_v more_o authentic_a because_o they_o can_v be_v easy_o counterfeit_v then_o any_o human_a evidence_n even_o the_o most_o esteem_v which_o be_v the_o king_n hand_n and_o seal_n to_o say_v because_o some_o pretend_a miracle_n have_v be_v imposture_n no_o miracle_n at_o all_o be_v true_a or_o none_o ought_v to_o be_v credit_v be_v no_o less_o unreasonable_a then_o to_o cry_v down_o all_o current_a money_n because_o there_o be_v some_o fall_v coin_n and_o be_v as_o ridiculous_a and_o rebellious_a as_o to_o disobey_v and_o reject_v all_o royal_a commission_n and_o order_n of_o council_n because_o some_o may_v or_o have_v be_v counterfeit_v and_o subreptitious_o obtain_v but_o suppose_v as_o protestant_n pretend_v that_o miracle_n be_v cease_v i_o hope_v the_o conversion_n of_o so_o many_o nation_n and_o king_n of_o the_o gentile_n to_o christianity_n and_o a_o continual_a succession_n of_o the_o roman_a doctrine_n and_o pastor_n be_v neither_o cease_v not_o counterfeit_v no_o other_o church_n but_o the_o roman_n catholic_n have_v these_o sign_n of_o god_n providence_n and_o as_o none_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o they_o be_v more_o convince_a argument_n and_o great_a evidence_n of_o the_o supernatural_a ministry_n and_o jurisdiction_n which_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v claim_v than_o any_o human_a sign_n badge_n or_o commission_n can_v be_v of_o the_o royal_a authority_n exercise_v by_o king_n officer_n either_o civil_a or_o military_a so_o likewise_o it_o must_v be_v acknowledge_v that_o there_o be_v a_o clear_a and_o great_a obligation_n upon_o man_n to_o submit_v their_o judgement_n and_o will_n to_o the_o definition_n and_o decree_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n and_o counsel_n propose_v or_o declare_v god_n revelation_n and_o command_n than_o there_o can_v be_v upon_o subject_n to_o obey_v the_o order_n of_o temporal_a souveraign_o publish_v or_o proclaim_v by_o their_o chief_a minister_n and_o subordinat_a officer_n heresy_n therefore_o as_o it_o be_v notorious_a rebellion_n in_o subject_n against_o their_o king_n authority_n to_o contemn_v his_o command_n when_o they_o be_v propose_v by_o minister_n that_o show_v his_o commission_n so_o be_v it_o manifest_a heresy_n and_o a_o denial_n of_o god_n veracity_n to_o contemn_v or_o doubt_v of_o the_o doctrine_n propose_v as_o divine_a by_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n so_o authentical_o qualify_v with_o the_o aforesaid_a supernatural_a mark_n and_o as_o it_o be_v want_v of_o duty_n and_o allegiance_n in_o subject_n and_o a_o ridiculous_a excuse_n for_o not_o obey_v order_n to_o pretend_v they_o have_v not_o clear_a evidence_n that_o the_o king_n sign_v they_o or_o for_o all_o they_o know_v that_o his_o minister_n or_o officer_n may_v be_v a_o impostor_n and_o his_o commission_n or_o warrant_v counterfeit_v so_o must_v it_o be_v conclude_v want_n of_o christian_n belief_n and_o excess_n of_o heretical_a obstinacy_n in_o protestant_n to_o excuse_v their_o contempt_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n doctrine_n and_o authority_n by_o pretend_v a_o possibility_n of_o mistake_n in_o the_o same_o church_n because_o forsooth_o they_o be_v not_o convince_v of_o its_o infallibility_n and_o authority_n by_o a_o demonstration_n or_o revelation_n so_o evident_a that_o though_o they_o will_v they_o can_v deny_v it_o such_o evidence_n be_v not_o necessary_a nor_o even_o compatible_a with_o christian_a belief_n as_o shall_v be_v prove_v hereafter_o less_o be_v sufficient_a to_o convince_v them-selve_n and_o all_o rational_a man_n of_o a_o strict_a obligation_n to_o believe_v and_o obey_v a_o temporal_a prince_n and_o magistrate_n and_o sure_o they_o be_v unreasonable_a if_o they_o imagine_v god_n deserve_v less_o belief_n duty_n and_o subjection_n than_o prince_n that_o protestant_n believe_v not_o their_o own_o church_n or_o congregation_n with_o out_o doubt_n and_o fear_n of_o be_v mistake_v in_o the_o reform_a doctrine_n and_o authority_n of_o propose_v the_o same_o we_o do_v not_o admire_v because_o not_o any_o on_o of_o their_o church_n do_v pretend_v to_o infallibility_n nor_o can_v hitherto_o or_o can_v yet_o show_v any_o sign_n or_o seal_v of_o god_n for_o their_o sense_n of_o scripture_n or_o reformation_n but_o that_o they_o shall_v think_v them-selve_n oblige_v to_o take_v a_o herald_n or_o trompeter_n coat_n and_o a_o constable_n or_o cathpol_n staff_n and_o other_o such_o badge_n so_o easy_o counterfeit_v for_o sufficient_a evidence_n of_o the_o king_n authority_n and_o yet_o except_o against_o the_o authenticness_n of_o the_o conversion_n of_o king_n and_o nation_n the_o succession_n and_o sanctity_n of_o pastor_n and_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n which_o be_v thing_n that_o can_v be_v
protestant_n principle_n to_o the_o discovery_n of_o the_o fraud_n and_o fortification_n wherewith_o the_o prelatic_a clergy_n do_v disguise_v they_o and_o divert_v their_o flock_n from_o reflect_v upon_o those_o sad_a effect_n which_o they_o have_v wrought_v and_o must_v work_v wheresoever_o they_o be_v 〈◊〉_d the_o religion_n of_o the_o sta●e_v a_o treatise_n of_o religion_n and_o government_n the_o three_o part_n contain_v a_o plain_a discovery_n of_o the_o protestant_a clergy_n fraud_n and_o falsification_n whereby_o alone_o their_o doctrine_n be_v support_v and_o make_v credible_a the_o conscience_n and_o conveniency_n of_o restore_v or_o tolerate_v the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n demonstrate_v sect_n i._o that_o either_o the_o learned_a protestant_n or_o roman_a catholic_n clergy_n be_v cheat_n and_o how_o every_o illiterate_a protestant_n may_v easy_o discern_v by_o which_o of_o the_o two_o clergy_n he_o be_v cheat_v and_o therefore_o be_v oblige_v under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o examine_v so_o near_o a_o concern_n and_o to_o renounce_v the_o doctrine_n and_o communion_n of_o that_o church_n wherein_o he_o be_v cheat_v of_o the_o true_a church_n be_v so_o conspicuous_a and_o manifest_a by_o such_o eminent_a and_o visible_a mark_n christ_n may_v well_o forbid_v the_o faithful_a to_o communicate_v with_o heretic_n and_o schismatic_n for_o that_o their_o conventicle_n 〈◊〉_d never_o be_v mistake_v for_o the_o whole_a or_o even_o a_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n unless_o man_n ●ill_v be_v so_o simple_a as_o to_o take_v their_o ●are_a word_n when_o they_o say_v hic_fw-la est_fw-la christus_fw-la aut_fw-la illic_fw-la whereas_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o learned_a man_n to_o be_v innocent_o mistake_v christ_n command_n have_v not_o be_v obligatory_a for_o in_o such_o ●_o case_n we_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o believe_v that_o christ_n be_v rather_o in_o one_o church_n then_o other_o see_v each_o church_n have_v reason_n sufficient_a to_o excuse_v learned_a party_n from_o schism_n and_o heresy_n but_o it_o be_v impossible_a that_o god_n shall_v command_v we_o to_o believe_v on_o congregation_n of_o christian_n and_o not_o believe_v other_o that_o pretend_v also_o to_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n without_o confirm_v the_o testimony_n and_o doctrine_n of_o that_o one_o congregation_n which_o he_o bid_v we_o believe_v and_o prefer_v before_o the_o rest_n with_o such_o clear_a sign_n of_o the_o truth_n and_o so_o evident_a mark_n of_o divine_a authority_n that_o the_o other_o compare_v therewith_o can_v have_v no_o probability_n two_o thing_n must_v be_v grant_v 1._o that_o the_o catholics_n church_n of_o christ_n can_v be_v compose_v of_o all_o or_o any_o dissent_v congregation_n 2._o that_o the_o one_o only_a congregation_n which_o be_v the_o true_a and_o catholic_n church_n can_v never_o be_v so_o eclipse_v but_o that_o it_o must_v appear_v much_o more_o eminent_a in_o sanctity_n miracle_n conversion_n of_o nation_n and_o much_o more_o credible_a in_o its_o testimony_n than_o any_o other_o wherefore_o we_o conclude_v that_o either_o the_o learned_a protestant_n clergy_n or_o the_o catholic_a must_v be_v cheat_n see_v that_o notwithstanding_o the_o evident_a and_o eminent_a sign_n and_o mark_n of_o god_n church_n can_v not_o be_v find_v in_o both_o or_o in_o any_o two_o congregation_n dissent_v in_o their_o doctrine_n and_o rule_n of_o faith_n yet_o each_o of_o they_o make_v their_o illiterate_a flock_n believe_v that_o their_o own_o be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o god_n whereupon_o the_o sign_n and_o seal_n of_o his_o authority_n and_o veracity_n do_v clear_o shine_v no_o human_a art_n or_o industry_n if_o not_o born-out_a with_o more_o than_o ordinary_a and_o notorious_a impudency_n can_v pretend_v to_o discredit_v or_o darken_v the_o spendor_n of_o true_a miracle_n sanctity_n successi●●_n become_v master_n of_o the_o commerce_n as_o shall_v be_v prove_v i_o hope_v these_o consideration_n will_v invite_v and_o incite_v they_o to_o examine_v which_o of_o both_o the_o clergy_n the_o roman_n catholic_n that_o petition_n for_o ●r_o the_o prelatic_a protestant_n that_o oppose_v liberty_n of_o conscience_n be_v the_o cheat_n and_o that_o they_o may_v find_v it_o out_o without_o much_o trouble_n i_o have_v thought_n sit_v to_o let_v they_o know_v there_o be_v not_o any_o one_o controversy_n between_o they_o and_o we_o which_o have_v not_o be_v handle_v in_o english_a and_o argue_v to_o the_o full_a on_o both_o side_n now_o the_o sum_n of_o our_o dispute_n be_v this_o whether_o the_o primitive_a church_n be_v roman_n catholic_n or_o rather_o protestant_n in_o the_o controvert_v point_n as_o pray_v to_o saint_n transubstantiation_n purgatory_n worship_n of_o image_n the_o canonical_a letter_n and_o sense_n of_o scripture_n etc._n etc._n to_o decide_v the_o controversy_n each_o side_n quote_v the_o word_n of_o scripture_n counsel_n and_o father_n because_o the_o true_a doctrine_n have_v be_v preserve_v and_o record_v in_o these_o write_n let_v he_o therefore_o that_o doubt_n of_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o text_n and_o of_o the_o sincerity_n of_o he_o that_o quote_v it_o compare_v the_o author_n word_n with_o the_o 〈…〉_z he_o will_v infallible_o find_v out_o who_o be_v the_o cheat._n for_o he_o that_o do_v corrupt_v the_o word_n or_o change_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n counsel_n and_o father_n do_v not_o stick_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n and_o because_o i_o have_v spend_v some_o time_n both_o before_o and_o after_o my_o conversion_n to_o the_o catholic_n faith_n in_o examine_v the_o falsification_n and_o fraud_n of_o protestant_n and_o their_o objection_n against_o papist_n in_o the_o same_o kind_n i_o may_v speak_v with_o more_o assurance_n than_o other_o who_o have_v not_o so_o much_o experience_n and_o do_v protest_v that_o i_o never_o think_v it_o possible_a before_o i_o find_v it_o be_v so_o the_o facto_fw-la that_o man_n pretend_v not_o only_a to_o the_o name_n of_o reform_a christianity_n but_o to_o the_o reality_n and_o sanctity_n of_o a_o episcopal_a character_n and_o charge_n of_o soul_n can_v be_v so_o unconsiderable_a unworthy_a and_o uncharitable_a in_o matter_n of_o eternity_n as_o i_o have_v ●ound_v the_o protestant_a writer_n and_o in_o particular_a the_o prelaticks_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n let_v any_o who_o desire_v to_o satisfy_v his_o conscience_n or_o curiosity_n peruse_v and_o compare_v either_o the_o book_n of_o jevel_n and_o harding_n or_o of_o bishop_n morton_n and_o father_n peson_n the_o nature_n or_o essence_n of_o a_o body_n or_o whether_o quantity_n be_v a_o thing_n distinct_a from_o that_o which_o we_o call_v a_o corporeal_a substance_n subsect_n i._o with_o what_o impudence_n and_o hypocrisy_n bishop_n jevell_v and_o other_o prelatic_a writer_n begin_v to_o maintain_v the_o protestancy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o how_o they_o be_v blame_v for_o appeal_n to_o antiquity_n by_o some_o of_o their_o own_o brethren_n to_o manifest_v the_o impudence_n and_o hypocrisy_n wherewith_o prelatic_a protestancy_n be_v broach_v and_o impose_v upon_o the_o laity_n in_o the_o begin_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n reign_n i_o will_v begin_v with_o bishop_n jevell_n famous_a challenge_n and_o his_o second_o that_o offer_v to_o maintain_v the_o primitive_a antiquity_n of_o protestancy_n and_o the_o novelty_n of_o popery_n his_o word_n be_v as_o i_o say_v before_o i_o say_v again_o i_o be_o content_a to_o yield_v and_o subscribe_v if_o any_o of_o our_o learned_a adversary_n or_o if_o all_o the_o learned_a man_n that_o be_v alive_a be_v able_a to_o bring_v one_o sufficient_a sentence_n out_o of_o any_o one_o catholic_n doctor_n or_o father_n or_o out_o of_o any_o old_a general_n council_n etc._n etc._n for_o the_o space_n of_o 600._o year_n after_o christ_n &c_n &c_n protest_v also_o that_o he_o affirm_v thus_o much_o not_o as_o carry_v away_o with_o the_o heat_n of_o zeal_n but_o as_o move_v with_o the_o simple_a truth_n lest_o any_o of_o you_o shall_v happy_o be_v deceive_v and_o think_v there_o be_v more_o weight_n on_o the_o other_o side_n then_o in_o conclusion_n will_v be_v find_v etc._n etc._n and_o then_o he_o break_v into_o this_o vehement_a apostrophe_n o_o merciful_a god_n who_o can_v think_v that_o there_o can_v be_v so_o much_o wilfulness_n in_o the_o heart_n of_o man_n then_o exclaim_n o_o gregory_n o_o austin_n o_o hierom_n o_o chrysostom_n o_o leo_n o_o dionise_v o_o anacl●tus_n o_o calixtus_n o_o paul_n o_o christ_n if_o we_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 626._o acknowledge_v the_o impossibility_n of_o defend_v the_o protestant_a religion_n by_o tradition_n or_o by_o any_o monument_n o●_n example_n from_o antiquity_n or_o by_o the_o say_n of_o father_n and_o counsel_n insomuch_o that_o archbishop_n whitgift_n in_o his_o defence_n against_o the_o reply_n of_o cartwright_n pag._n 472._o &_o 473._o do_v not_o stick_v to_o say_v that_o almost_o all_o the_o bishop_n and_o learned_a writer_n of_o
to_o the_o earl_n of_o arundel_n that_o she_o will_v marry_v he_o 107._o and_o by_o promise_v other_o favour_n to_o the_o duke_n of_o norfolck_n have_v by_o their_o solicitation_n gain_v most_o of_o the_o nobility_n 107._o and_o the_o lord_n and_o gentleman_n who_o have_v the_o manage_n of_o election_n in_o their_o several_a county_n have_v retain_v such_o man_n for_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o house_n of_o commons_o as_o they_o conceive_v mo●●_n likely_a to_o comply_v with_o the_o queen_n new_a design_n in_o revive_v that_o religion_n which_o but_o five_o year_n before_o them-selve_n and_o the_o whole_a kingdom_n have_v reject_v as_o damnable_a heresy_n and_o groundless_a novelty_n devise_v by_o some_o l●wed_a revolt_a friar_n and_o priest_n and_o have_v observe_v how_o all_o sober_a and_o conscientious_a man_n we●●_n trouble_v to_o see_v so_o shameful_a a_o change_n introduce_v only_o for_o maintain_v the_o weakness_n of_o a_o title_n against_o the_o clear_a right_n of_o the_o steward_n and_o fear_v least_o this_o scruple_n may_v spread_v and_o work_v upon_o the_o conscience_n of_o the_o illiterate_a multitude_n 103._o it_o be_v think_v fit_a to_o command_v bishop_n jewel_n the_o fit_a man_n for_o so_o impudent_a a_o undertake_n to_o assert_v the_o antiquity_n of_o the_o particular_a tenet_n of_o the_o new_a church_n of_o england_n and_o so_o in_o form_n of_o a_o challenge_n against_o all_o roman_a catholic_n he_o publish_v at_o paul_n cross_n that_o the_o religion_n which_o the_o queen_n and_o parliament_n have_v then_o establish_v by_o law_n be_v no_o novelty_n nor_o new_a invent_a sense_n of_o scripture_n but_o the_o same_o which_o our_o saviour_n and_o his_o apostle_n deliver_v to_o the_o church_n and_o all_o orthodox_n christian_n hold_v for_o the_o first_o 600._o year_n which_o thing_n he_o undertake_v to_o demonstrat_fw-la by_o undeniable_a testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n that_o live_v in_o those_o six_o first_o century_n the_o word_n of_o this_o challenge_n we_o have_v set_v down_o heretofore_o 1_o as_o also_o the_o confutation_n thereof_o one_o rastal_n have_v write_v against_o this_o challenge_n jewel_n together_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n and_o learned_a protestant_a clergy_n compose_v that_o famous_a apology_n for_o the_o church_n of_o england_n both_o in_o latin_a and_o english_a it_o come_v out_o first_o in_o the_o name_n of_o their_o whole_a church_n though_o i_o believe_v jewel_n have_v the_o word_v of_o it_o because_o afterward_o his_o name_n be_v set_v to_o it_o and_o to_o the_o defence_n thereof_o but_o without_o doubt_v all_o the_o able_a man_n of_o the_o english_a clergy_n have_v their_o hand_n and_o head_n in_o the_o work_n against_o it_o divers_a appear_v in_o print_n stapleton_n sanders_n and_o harding_n whereupon_o say_v dean_n walsingham_n in_o his_o search_n of_o religion_n pag._n 166._o mr._n jewel_n within_o few_o year_n after_o set_v forth_o the_o reply_n to_o d._n r_o harding_n which_o be_v esteem_v to_o have_v be_v make_v by_o joint_a labour_n of_o the_o most_o learned_a man_n in_o england_n both_o in_o london_n and_o the_o university_n but_o in_o these_o their_o labour_n they_o be_v convict_v of_o a_o thousand_o and_o odd_a falsification_n reader_n and_o yet_o say_v harding_n of_o 26._o article_n only_o five_o have_v pass_v our_o examination_n imagine_v then_o what_o number_n be_v like_a to_o rise_v of_o the_o whole_a work_n i_o will_v mention_v but_o one_o or_o two_o of_o every_o controversy_n i_o hope_v that_o be_v sufficient_a to_o prove_v that_o no_o one_o point_n wherein_o protestant_n differ_v from_o roman_a catholic_n can_v be_v maintain_v even_o by_o the_o most_o learned_a protestant_n without_o fraud_n falsehood_n and_o imposture_n and_o do_v choose_v to_o instance_n particular_n out_o of_o this_o apology_n and_o defence_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n because_o it_o be_v not_o only_o the_o work_n of_o their_o first_o bishop_n and_o clergy_n 131_o and_o the_o very_a bulwark_n of_o their_o church_n but_o as_o d._n r_o heylin_n true_o say_v the_o magazine_n from_o whence_o all_o the_o protestant_a controversy_n since_o that_o time_n have_v furnish_v them-selve_n with_o argument_n and_o authority_n we_o will_v omit_v most_o of_o their_o corruption_n of_o scripture_n in_o the_o apology_n because_o we_o have_v convict_v they_o elsewhere_o of_o that_o crime_n but_o that_o they_o may_v not_o imagine_v we_o what_o matter_n even_o in_o this_o work_n of_o they_o let_v the_o curious_a read_v 〈…〉_z epistle_n to_o m._n r_o jewel_n set_v before_o his_o return_n 〈◊〉_d untruths_n where_o he_o tell_v he_o you_o have_v falsify_v and_o mangle_v the_o very_a text_n of_o holy_a scripture_n namely_o of_o saint_n paul_n in_o one_o chapter_n nine_o time_n as_o the_o reader_n may_v see_v in_o the_o three_o article_n of_o his_o book_n fol._n 107._o subsect_n i._o the_o protestant_a clergy_n convict_v of_o falsehood_n in_o their_o apology_n concern_v communion_n under_o one_o kind_n bishop_n jewel_n and_o his_o associate_n maintain_v with_o most_o protestant_n that_o to_o receive_v the_o b._n sacrament_n 〈◊〉_d one_o kind_n only_o be_v against_o the_o institution_n of_o christ●_n and_o therefore_o can_v not_o be_v allow_v nor_o practise_v by_o the_o church_n nor_o ever_o be_v during_o the_o first_o six_o hundred_o year_n so_o that_o the_o controversy_n between_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o harding_n be_v whether_o in_o the_o first_o 600._o year_n after_o christ_n any_o communion_n be_v minister_v under_o one_o kind_n 134._o or_o no_o which_o they_o under_o the_o name_n of_o m._n r_o jewel_n deny_v against_o who_o harding_n give_v a_o instance_n out_o of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n of_o one_o serapian_a that_o be_v communicate_v in_o his_o death_n under_o one_o kind_n only_o mr._n jewel_n see_v him-self_n convict_v reply_v that_o it_o be_v not_o our_o question_n we_o understand_v not_o of_o private_a communion_n but_o of_o public_a in_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o in_o the_o first_o propose_v of_o the_o question_n there_o be_v no_o mention_n of_o the_o church_n or_o public_a and_o the_o whole_a controversy_n between_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n be_v whether_o with_o out_o breach_n of_o christ_n institution_n any_o man_n may_v communicate_v under_o one_o kind_n only_o then_o mr._n jewel_n be_v demand_v whether_o if_o it_o may_v be_v prove_v that_o sick_a person_n have_v receive_v the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n in_o the_o church_n it_o will_v satisfy_v he_o where_o to_o he_o answer_v no_o say_v the_o only_a thing_n that_o i_o deny_v be_v that_o you_o be_v not_o able_a to_o bring_v any_o one_o sufficient_a example_n or_o authority_n 132._o that_o ever_o the_o whole_a people_n receive_v the_o communion_n in_o open_a church_n in_o one_o kind_n within_o that_o time_n then_o he_o be_v urge_v further_o whether_o if_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v that_o in_o close_o chapel_n and_o oratory_n in_o wilderness_n and_o cave_n in_o time_n of_o persecution_n the_o communion_n be_v practise_v under_o one_o kind_n this_o will_v satisfy_v he_o for_o so_o muc●_n as_o this_o prove_v christ_n institution_n not_o to_o forbid_v communion_n under_o one_o kind_n but_o m._n r_o jewel_n leap_v also_o from_o this_o say_v the_o question_n be_v whether_o the_o holy_a communion_n be_v ever_o minister_v open_o in_o the_o church_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o for_o the_o first_o 300._o year_n until_o constantin_n time_n the_o christian_n in_o most_o place_n particular_o at_o rome_n have_v no_o open_a church_n but_o private_a oratory_n and_o cave_n at_o length_n be_v demand_v whether_o infant_n receive_v the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n open_o in_o the_o church_n be_v a_o sufficient_a example_n jewel_n answer_v mr._n harding_n make_v his_o whole_a plea_n upon_o a_o jnfant_n and_o yet_o of_o infant_n as_o he_o know_v i_o speak_v nothing_o mr._n harding_n press_v he_o with_o the_o example_n of_o the_o two_o disciple_n alii_fw-la to_o who_o christ_n our_o saviour_n do_v give_v the_o communion_n under_o one_o kind_n only_o at_o emaus_n as_o by_o the_o text_n of_o scripture_n and_o jnterpretation_n of_o ancient_a father_n be_v plain_a he_o allege_v also_o the_o example_n of_o s._n t_o ambrose_n and_o s._n t_o basil_n who_o receive_v the_o sacrament_n under_o one_o kind_n though_o they_o be_v priest_n whereunto_o m._n r_o jewel_n answer_v this_o be_v not_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o the_o question_n be_v move_v of_o lay_v people_n m._n r_o harding_n bring_v example_n of_o christ_n and_o two_o disciple_n who_o be_v of_o the_o number_n of_o 72._o and_o therefore_o it_o may_v well_o be_v think_v they_o be_v minister_n and_o not_o of_o the_o lie_v sort_n i_o demand_v of_o the_o laity_n m._n r_o harding_n answer_v of_o st._n ambrose_n and_o st._n basil_n which_o be_v bishop_n which_o evasion_n be_v not_o only_o fraudulent_a but_o foolish_a as_o if_o forsooth_o priest_n
confess_v a_o fault_n in_o the_o maintenance_n whereof_o their_o fortune_n be_v concern_v and_o by_o consequence_n how_o accountable_a the_o protestant_n laity_n be_v to_o god_n for_o not_o mistrust_v and_o examine_v the_o truth_n and_o sincerity_n of_o their_o own_o clergy_n be_v so_o indigent_a and_o so_o interest_v person_n and_o so_o confident_o charge_v and_o so_o frequent_o catch_v with_o falsehood_n what_o fraud_n can_v be_v more_o visible_a then_o to_o make_v man_n believe_v that_o so_o infamous_a and_o dissolute_a person_n as_o luther_n zuinglius_fw-la calvin_n cranmer_n and_o beza_n etc._n etc._n be_v saint_n send_v by_o god_n to_o restore_v his_o church_n unto_o its_o primitive_a doctrine_n and_o spirit_n or_o that_o they_o and_o all_o protestant_n do_v agree_v in_o all_o matter_n of_o faith_n against_o papist_n their_o dissension_n vice_n and_o wickedness_n be_v so_o manifest_a that_o they_o can_v not_o be_v deny_v without_o impudence_n and_o without_o give_v the_o lie_n to_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o contradict_v their_o own_o write_n and_o yet_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n and_o his_o junta_n of_o divine_n will_v face_v down_o mr._n walsingham_n that_o there_o be_v no_o such_o matter_n and_o because_o the_o poor_a man_n humble_o petition_v to_o have_v the_o matter_n decide_v by_o compare_v their_o own_o book_n which_o be_v in_o the_o next_o room_n with_o his_o note_n he_o be_v censure_v and_o call_v a_o foolish_a bold_a knave_n impudent_a fellow_n s●●cy_a companion_n etc._n etc._n and_o threaten_a with_o prison_n and_o pillary_n and_o for_o that_o they_o dare_v not_o betray_v the_o weakness_n of_o their_o cause_n by_o so_o public_a and_o violent_a proceed_n against_o a_o know_a protestant_n who_o desire_v to_o continue_v one_o of_o themselves_o if_o protestancy_n do_v not_o prove_v to_o be_v a_o mistake_n of_o christianity_n the_o archbishop_n to_o be_v shut_v of_o he_o send_v he_o to_o the_o commissary_n of_o st._n alban_n to_o be_v resolve_v forsooth_o whether_o luther_n acknowledge_v in_o his_o book_n that_o he_o begin_v the_o protestant_n reformation_n and_o impugn_a the_o mass_n adoration_n of_o the_o sacrament_n invocation_n of_o saint_n etc._n etc._n move_v thereunto_o by_o the_o devil_n be_v argument_n in_o a_o real_a conference_n between_o himself_o and_o sathan_n as_o if_o this_o passage_n and_o other_o of_o luther_n and_o calvin_n work_n be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o london_n or_o in_o his_o grace_n library_n at_o lambeth_n as_o well_o as_o at_o st._n alban_n and_o after_o that_o by_o his_o own_o importunity_n mr._n walsingham_n have_v obtain_v of_o doctor_n covell_n to_o show_v he_o luther_n book_n wherein_o he_o acknowledge_v this_o conference_n and_o conviction_n of_o the_o devil_n be_v argument_n 19_o that_o the_o doctor_n shall_v interrupt_v he_o and_o divert_v the_o whole_a discourse_n with_o a_o rush_n you_o see_v i_o have_v this_o book_n and_o many_o such_o like_a 3._o reflection_n by_o what_o particular_a indirect_a mean_n cavil_v and_o calumny_n the_o archbishop_n himself_o endeavour_v to_o maintain_v the_o protestant_n religion_n and_o discredit_v the_o catholic_n deliver_v to_o mr._n walsingham_n mr._n bell_n libel_n against_o the_o jesuit_n as_o a_o invincible_a fortress_n against_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o his_o other_o book_n full_a of_o corruption_n and_o falsification_n as_o a_o very_a sincere_a and_o solid_a piece_n which_o falsification_n be_v show_v to_o they_o all_o sit_v in_o their_o junta_n and_o judgement_n about_o that_o affair_n the_o archbishop_n dare_v not_o send_v into_o his_o study_n for_o the_o father_n work_n that_o be_v affirm_v by_o mr._n walsingham_n to_o have_v be_v corrupt_v by_o bell_n and_o calvin_n 40._o etc._n etc._n his_o lordship_n be_v confess_v practice_n also_o of_o burn_a catholic_n book_n argue_v the_o weakness_n of_o the_o protestant_n cause_n and_o prove_v how_o much_o they_o be_v afraid_a their_o own_o false_a deal_n and_o the_o impiety_n of_o their_o principle_n shall_v be_v discover_v 4._o reflection_n that_o mr._n walsingham_n case_n have_v be_v and_o be_v revive_v and_o practise_v now_o every_o day_n when_o any_o conscientious_a protestant_n begin_v to_o doubt_v of_o the_o safety_n and_o sincerity_n of_o his_o religion_n the_o protestant_n clergy_n tell_v he_o that_o he_o be_v in_o a_o sure_a way_n of_o salvation_n and_o yet_o this_o assertion_n be_v against_o one_o of_o their_o article_n of_o faith_n to_o wit_n that_o which_o acknowledge_v their_o church_n be_v fallible_a in_o propose_v christ_n doctrine_n and_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o by_o consequence_n for_o all_o they_o know_v themselves_o may_v be_v in_o damnable_a error_n then_o they_o tell_v he_o the_o papist_n be_v jdolater_n worship_n antichrist_n etc._n etc._n that_o our_o book_n of_o controversye_n be_v full_a of_o lie_n and_o fable_n and_o to_o make_v good_a these_o their_o imposture_n they_o not_o only_o corrupt_v our_o author_n but_o translate_v into_o english_a all_o infamous_a libel_n though_o they_o treat_v not_o of_o controversy_n as_o the_o jansenist_n letter_n palafox_n his_o relation_n and_o for_o the_o renegat_n fr._n paulo_n his_o history_n of_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n angl._n they_o swear_v it_o be_v the_o most_o exact_a and_o sincere_a work_n of_o this_o age_n whereas_o cardinal_n palavicino_n in_o his_o answer_n to_o the_o same_o and_o in_o the_o very_a begin_n have_v set_v down_o 300._o of_o fr_n paulo_n untruth_n in_o matter_n of_o fact_n so_o palpable_a that_o they_o seem_v inexcusable_a in_o he_o and_o render_v other_o guilty_a of_o unpardonable_a rashness_n and_o obstinacy_n who_o credit_n so_o mistake_v or_o malicious_a a_o author_n and_o prefer_v his_o bare_a word_n before_o the_o unanimous_a testimony_n of_o all_o christendom_n that_o have_v accept_v the_o definition_n of_o the_o council_n as_o catholic_n truth_n which_o they_o will_v never_o have_v do_v have_v they_o be_v such_o as_o fr_n paul●_n describe_v be_v it_o likely_a that_o the_o bishop_n ambassador_n and_o prelate_n of_o so_o different_a nation_n and_o subject_n to_o prince_n of_o so_o contrary_a interest_n who_o be_v present_a at_o the_o council_n and_o recommend_v to_o their_o flock_n and_o friend_n the_o decree_n of_o trent_n as_o sacred_a will_v conspire_v to_o cheat_v and_o damn_v their_o souveraign_o relation_n and_o neighbour_n or_o that_o they_o know_v not_o better_a how_o matter_n go_v in_o the_o council_n or_o be_v not_o more_o impartial_a in_o relate_v they_o than_o one_o apost●ta_n friar_n or_o those_o person_n from_o who_o he_o pretend_v to_o have_v receive_v his_o paper_n and_o intelligence_n with_o such_o pitiful_a fraud_n and_o fashood_n be_v many_o poor_a protestant_n soul_n delude_v and_o seduce_v into_o eternal_a damnation_n which_o they_o deserve_v for_o believe_v their_o own_o clergy_n without_o any_o further_a examination_n of_o the_o scruple_n and_o doubt_n which_o common_a sense_n and_o natural_a reason_n do_v raise_v in_o every_o one_o of_o they_o that_o converse_v with_o roman_a catholic_n or_o observe_v the_o incoherency_n and_o inconstancy_n of_o protestancy_n together_o with_o its_o singularity_n and_o pride_n of_o spirit_n contemn_v the_o primitive_a true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n declare_v by_o universal_a tradition_n and_o the_o unanimous_a consent_n of_o all_o orthodox_n father_n and_o council_n perditio_fw-la tua_fw-la ex_fw-la te_fw-la jsrael_n 5._o reflection_n one_o of_o my_o lord_n of_o canterburye_n reason_n to_o mr._n walsingham_n against_o credit_v the_o popish_a book_n be_v do_v you_o not_o know_v when_o two_o man_n go_v to_o law_n together_o one_o will_v speak_v the_o worst_a he_o can_v by_o the_o other_o and_o though_o this_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v practise_v in_o law_n suit_n much_o less_o in_o controversy_n of_o religion_n yet_o see_v my_o lord_n will_v have_v protestant_n read_v our_o book_n with_o that_o prejudice_n reason_n do_v dictat_fw-la that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v read_v without_o caution_n especial_o see_v every_o protestant_n ●eader_n make_v himself_o supreme_a judge_n of_o controversy_n of_o religion_n and_o no_o judge_n ought_v to_o give_v sentence_n before_o both_o side_n be_v hear_v suppose_v therefore_o that_o the_o protestant_n and_o catholic_n clergy_n be_v engage_v not_o only_o in_o a_o dispute_n of_o religion_n but_o in_o a_o suit_n of_o law_n to_o wit_n whether_o the_o revenue_n of_o the_o church_n of_o the_o three_o kingdom_n belong_v of_o right_n rather_o to_o the_o present_a possessor_n then_o to_o the_o ancient_a proprietor_n neither_o party_n say_v you_o ought_v to_o be_v judge_n in_o his_o own_o cause_n who_o then_o must_v decide_v the_o business_n the_o laity_n content_v let_v my_o lord_n chancellor_n of_o england_n notwithstanding_o his_o know_a jnclination_n to_o favour_n and_o promote_v protestancy_n be_v name_v head_n of_o a_o committee_n for_o examine_v and_o decide_v the_o question_n let_v it_o be_v try_v in_o public_a court_n which_o
of_o england_n of_o his_o design_n to_o reform_v the_o principle_n and_o liberty_n of_o protestancy_n intend_v thereby_o to_o render_v it_o less_o dangerous_a to_o lawful_a sovereign_n and_o monarchy_n how_o k._n charles_n 1._o pursue_v his_o father_n design_n but_o his_o suffering_n and_o death_n demonstrat_fw-la the_o impossibility_n of_o confine_v the_o protestant_a liberty_n within_o the_o rule_n of_o government_n or_o reason_n by_o the_o fundamental_a principle_n of_o protestancy_n every_o particular_a person_n be_v a_o supreme_a judge_n in_o spiritual_a affair_n and_o may_v more_o easy_o apply_v and_o abuse_v that_o prerogative_n to_o the_o prejudice_n of_o his_o sovereign_n than_o the_o pope_n can_v his_o papal_a supremacy_n therefore_o it_o be_v a_o great_a providence_n of_o god_n when_o any_o protestant_a king_n of_o england_n escape_v to_o be_v judge_v and_o depose_v by_o his_o subject_n the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o unreasonableness_n of_o protestancy_n and_o of_o the_o inconsistency_n of_o the_o principle_n of_o protestancy_n with_o christian_a piety_n and_o peaceable_a government_n sect_n i._n the_o unreasonableness_n and_o inconsistency_n of_o protestancy_n with_o christian_a piety_n or_o policy_n prove_v by_o the_o very_a fundamental_a principle_n of_o all_o protestant_a reformation_n which_o principle_n be_v a_o supposition_n of_o the_o fallibility_n and_o fall_n of_o the_o visible_a catholic_n church_n from_o the_o pure_a and_o primitive_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n to_o damnable_a error_n and_o notorious_a superstition_n such_o a_o change_n be_v demonstrate_v both_o incredible_a and_o impossible_a sect_n ii_o the_o protestant_n proof_n of_o such_o a_o change_n be_v their_o pretend_a cleverness_n of_o scripture_n it_o be_v demonstrate_v that_o their_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v not_o clear_a in_o any_o text_n controvert_v between_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n that_o the_o principle_n of_o protestancy_n incline_v to_o vice_n the_o catholic_n principle_n to_o virtue_n prove_v in_o many_o particular_n the_o invisibility_n of_o the_o church_n a_o ridiculous_a comment_n sect_n iii_o the_o protestant_a letter_n and_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n doctor_n cousin_n his_n scholastical_a history_n of_o the_o english_a canon_n of_o scripture_n confute_v as_o also_o his_o exception_n against_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n canon_n the_o lutheran_n church_n of_o germany_n agree_v not_o with_o the_o english_a canon_n of_o scripture_n subsect_v i._n doctor_n cousin_n now_o bp._n of_o duresme_fw-fr his_o exception_n against_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n answer_v the_o legality_n of_o a_o council_n as_o well_o as_o of_o a_o parliament_n may_v stand_v with_o the_o absence_n of_o many_o member_n if_o they_o be_v summon_v and_o expect_v the_o absurdity_n of_o protestant_a writer_n except_v against_o the_o want_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n whereas_o themselves_o make_v new_a religion_n and_o reformation_n by_o a_o single_a voice_n of_o luther_n zuinglius_fw-la calvin_n etc._n etc._n and_o in_o england_n by_o the_o vote_n of_o the_o major_a part_n of_o twelve_o person_n name_v by_o the_o parliament_n to_o determine_v matter_n of_o faith_n and_o sacrament_n seven_o man_n be_v think_v sufficient_a to_o do_v the_o work_n and_o cast_v the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n protestant_n bishop_n can_v no_o more_o pretend_v to_o sit_v and_o define_v in_o a_o general_a council_n then_o proclaim_v rebel_n can_v pretend_v to_o vote_n in_o a_o lawful_a parliament_n it_o be_v as_o reasonable_a the_o bishop_n and_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v condemn_v heretic_n and_o judge_v all_o controversy_n of_o faith_n as_o it_o be_v that_o a_o king_n and_o parliament_n condemn_v rebel_n and_o judge_v suit_n in_o law_n a_o new_a definition_n of_o pope_n or_o council_n be_v no_o new_a article_n of_o faith_n it_o be_v only_o a_o declaration_n of_o our_o obligation_n to_o believe_v that_o which_o former_o have_v be_v reveal_v but_o not_o sufficient_o propose_v doctor_n cousin_n his_n egregious_a falsification_n of_o belarmin_n his_o wrest_a word_n of_o st._n austin_n and_o st._n hierom._n sect_n iu._n the_o protestant_a translation_n of_o scripture_n be_v fraudulent_a and_o false_a no_o certainty_n of_o christian_a faith_n can_v be_v build_v upon_o they_o protestant_n admit_v no_o copy_n or_o translation_n to_o be_v authentic_a to_o the_o end_n they_o may_v be_v at_o liberty_n to_o reject_v what_o they_o do_v not_o fancy_v of_o the_o letter_n of_o scripture_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o sense_n the_o vulgar_a latin_a be_v authentic_a scripture_n how_o corrupt_a be_v all_o english_a bibles_n how_o in_o k._n edward_n 6._o his_o reign_n cranmer_n and_o the_o first_o apostle_n of_o english_a protestancy_n change_v the_o very_a text_n of_o christ_n word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n three_o several_a time_n protestant_n make_v the_o apostle_n fallible_a in_o doctrine_n even_o after_o receive_v the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o by_o consequence_n must_v hold_v their_o write_n or_o scripture_n to_o be_v fallible_a subsect_v i._n many_o particular_a instance_n of_o protestant_a corruption_n in_o the_o english_a bibles_n to_o asert_v the_o protestant_n and_o prelatic_a doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n against_o image_n against_o ordination_n by_o imposition_n of_o hand_n against_o the_o single_a life_n of_o priest_n against_o the_o sacrifice_n of_o mass_n against_o vow_n of_o chastity_n to_o favour_v the_o king_n supremacy_n how_o fond_o these_o corruption_n be_v excuse_v by_o whitaker_n and_o how_o absurd_o scripture_n be_v make_v speak_v according_a to_o the_o protestant_a translation_n what_o small_a hope_n there_o be_v that_o a_o clergy_n which_o corrupt_v scripture_n or_o continue_v and_o countenance_v corruption_n of_o scripture_n will_v repent_v or_o recant_v their_o error_n and_o how_o little_a reason_n the_o protestant_a laity_n have_v to_o rely_v upon_o their_o clergys_n sincerity_n or_o upon_o their_o english_a scripture_n sect_n v._n the_o protestant_a interpretation_n be_v not_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n the_o principal_a part_n of_o god_n word_n be_v the_o sense_n he_o deliver_v to_o the_o church_n together_o with_o the_o letter_n it_o be_v against_o reason_n to_o believe_v that_o the_o church_n will_v be_v more_o careful_a of_o preserve_v the_o letter_n then_o of_o preserve_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o protestant_n be_v unexcusable_a for_o take_v the_o letter_n from_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o reject_v the_o sense_n the_o holy_a father_n bid_v we_o receive_v the_o sense_n of_o scripture_n as_o well_o as_o the_o letter_n from_o the_o church_n a_o infallible_a mark_n of_o heresy_n to_o do_v the_o contrary_n it_o be_v at_o least_o 16._o to_o one_o that_o the_o roman_n catholic_n sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v true_a and_o the_o protestant_n fall_v sect_n vi._n no_o protestant_a church_n have_v a_o true_a ministry_n miracle_n succession_n of_o doctrine_n or_o sanctity_n of_o life_n their_o extraordinary_a vocation_n be_v ridiculous_a and_o incredible_a it_o be_v impossible_a that_o god_n shall_v send_v minister_n to_o contradict_v doctrine_n confirm_v with_o so_o many_o sign_n of_o his_o own_o authority_n and_o approbation_n as_o the_o roman_n catholic_n be_v god_n never_o send_v such_o vicious_a man_n as_o the_o protestant_a reformer_n be_v to_o reform_v his_o church_n either_o in_o the_o old_a or_o new_a testament_n if_o the_o protestant_a doctrine_n have_v be_v true_a god_n will_v have_v wrought_v miracle_n to_o confirm_v it_o for_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o seduce_a papist_n as_o protestant_n confess_v he_o do_v for_o the_o conversion_n of_o the_o jndian_o japonians_n and_o china_n what_o wicked_a man_n be_v luther_n zuinglius_fw-la calvin_n beza_n cranmer_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o his_o comrade_n that_o frame_v the_o religion_n and_o liturgy_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o how_o little_a credit_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n deserve_v the_o parliament_n that_o confirm_v the_o same_o calvin_n miracle_n at_o geneva_n foretell_v by_o tertullian_n sect_n vii_o the_o conversion_n of_o pagan_a king_n and_o kingdom_n to_o christianity_n foretell_v in_o scripture_n be_v a_o more_o clear_a sign_n of_o the_o true_a church_n than_o any_o other_o miracle_n and_o not_o to_o be_v find_v in_o any_o other_o church_n but_o in_o the_o roman_n catholic_n acknowledge_v by_o learned_a protestant_n of_o barlow_n threescore_o invisible_a queen_n convert_v by_o protestant_n no_o great_a a_o absurdity_n than_o their_o invisible_a church_n the_o vain_a endeavour_n of_o calvin_n and_o other_o protestant_n to_o convert_v heathen_a nation_n bezas_n despair_n of_o success_n in_o that_o ministry_n and_o his_o advice_n to_o protestant_n to_o leave_v that_o labour_n to_o the_o jesuit_n and_o rather_o busy_a themselves_o at_o home_n tertullia_n say_v that_o its_o a_o sign_n of_o heretic_n to_o pervert_v christian_n not_o convert_v pagan_n may_v be_v proper_o apply_v to_o protestant_n their_o success_n in_o propagate_a their_o new_a gospel_n no_o
people_n be_v abuse_v many_o protestant_a mistake_n wherewith_o the_o common_a sort_n be_v fool_v be_v now_o clear_v and_o their_o own_o conveniency_n will_v invite_v they_o to_o examine_v further_o the_o error_n of_o doctrine_n incident_a to_o education_n from_o which_o error_n the_o protestant_a church_n do_v acknowledge_v itself_o not_o exempt_v if_o the_o protestant_a faith_n be_v true_a such_o a_o trial_n as_o we_o desire_v will_v be_v of_o great_a satisfaction_n to_o the_o professor_n thereof_o and_o confirm_v they_o in_o their_o religion_n and_o convert_v papist_n and_o sectary_n to_o the_o same_o if_o it_o be_v falf_n beside_o the_o salvation_n of_o soul_n by_o a_o discovery_n and_o procession_n of_o the_o roman_a truth_n these_o kingdom_n will_v be_v able_a not_o only_o to_o defend_v themselves_o but_o offend_v foreign_a enemy_n after_o we_o be_v enable_v thereunto_o by_o a_o conscientious_a addition_n of_o a_o million_o sterl_n per_fw-la a_o to_o the_o public_a revenue_n no_o danger_n of_o sacrilege_n in_o apply_v the_o church_n revenue_n to_o pious_a and_o public_a use_n for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o people_n practise_v by_o the_o ancient_a catholic_n clergy_n not_o one_o good_a reason_n why_o the_o church_n of_o england_n ought_v not_o to_o admit_v of_o such_o a_o public_a conference_n as_o we_o propose_v and_o desire_v bishop_n laud_n reason_n to_o the_o contrary_n confute_v the_o deny_v and_o differ_v it_o a_o sign_n that_o protestant_n be_v guilty_a catholic_n grant_v conference_n to_o protestant_n whensoever_o they_o demand_v it_o the_o protestant_a laity_n have_v reason_n to_o question_v their_o clergy_n ordination_n and_o character_n as_o well_o as_o their_o doctrine_n the_o new_a change_n of_o their_o form_n of_o ordination_n very_o suspicious_a that_o the_o roman_a religion_n be_v such_o a_o grow_a religion_n prove_v it_o be_v the_o true_a religion_n fit_a to_o be_v make_v the_o religion_n of_o the_o state_n the_o four_o part_n the_o roman_a catholic_n religion_n in_o every_o particular_a wherein_o it_o differ_v from_o the_o protestant_n be_v confirm_v by_o considerable_a miracle_n record_v not_o in_o vain_a legend_n or_o modern_a author_n but_o in_o the_o most_o authentic_a history_n of_o the_o world_n and_o by_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o doctor_n of_o god_n church_n sect_n j._n such_o miracle_n as_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o roman_a catholic_a church_n be_v true_a miracle_n the_o doctrine_n confirm_v by_o those_o miracle_n can_v be_v reject_v without_o doubt_v of_o god_n veracity_n every_o protestant_n do_v see_v though_o not_o observe_v true_a miracle_n in_o confirmation_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n what_o great_a scrutiny_n be_v make_v by_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n into_o true_a miracle_n and_o the_o life_n of_o man_n that_o be_v to_o be_v canonize_v for_o saint_n there_o can_v be_v no_o combination_n or_o cheat_n in_o such_o matter_n some_o miracle_n permanent_a that_o be_v see_v by_o all_o man_n as_o that_o of_o s._n januarius_n in_o naples_n a_o undeniable_a miracle_n of_o s._n francis_n xavier_n wrought_v upon_o marcello_n mastrilli_n most_o remarkable_a for_o many_o circumstance_n miracle_n to_o confirm_v popery_n relate_v by_o the_o magdeburgian_n centurist_n but_o by_o they_o absurd_o attribute_v to_o the_o devil_n or_o say_v to_o be_v seign_v true_a miracle_n can_v be_v wrought_v to_o confirm_v falsehood_n it_o be_v against_o god_n veracity_n to_o permit_v the_o same_o miracle_n oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v the_o doctrine_n in_o confirmation_n whereof_o thy_o be_v wrought_v the_o difference_n between_o antichrist_n and_o catholic_n miracle_n or_o true_a and_o false_a miracle_n that_o all_o the_o roman_a catholic_n adore_v the_o sacrament_n and_o believe_v transubstantiation_n as_o also_o other_o point_n of_o popery_n be_v a_o evident_a miracle_n of_o god_n and_o can_v not_o proceed_v from_o the_o devil_n power_n or_o art_n the_o devil_n temps_fw-fr man_n to_o be_v heretic_n by_o the_o mean_n and_o ministry_n of_o their_o sense_n and_o by_o humour_v the_o same_o not_o against_o the_o evidence_n and_o inclination_n of_o sense_n the_o general_a sign_n and_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n be_v undeniable_a miracle_n no_o other_o church_n beside_o the_o roman_n catholic_n can_v show_v those_o sign_n sect_n ii_o of_o particular_a miracle_n that_o confirm_v the_o roman_n catholic_n tenant_n and_o our_o sense_n of_o scripture_n relate_v by_o s._n chrysostome_n s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n s._n austin_n s._n nilus_n s._n cyprian_n the_o martyr_n s._n optatus_n s._n gregory_n the_o great_a and_o other_o in_o confirmation_n of_o adore_v the_o b._n sacrament_n transubstantiation_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n communion_n under_o one_o kind_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o purgatory_n primate_n usher_v falsification_n and_o fraud_n to_o discredit_v some_o of_o these_o miracle_n discover_v of_o miracle_n in_o england_n relate_v by_o waldensis_n and_o record_v by_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterburye_n register_n how_o protestant_n falsify_v the_o very_a statute_n and_o law_n book_n miracle_n wrought_v by_o s._n bernard_n to_o confirm_v every_o controvert_v point_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n doctrine_n against_o the_o protestant_n protestant_n writer_n confess_v s._n bernard_n be_v a_o saint_n and_o yet_o say_v his_o miracle_n be_v wrought_v by_o the_o devil_n how_o absurd_a sect_n iii_o miracle_n to_o confirm_v the_o worship_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n record_v by_o st._n paulinus_n st._n cyril_n of_o jerusalem_n st._n athanasius_n st._n hierom_n st._n gregory_n tu●onensis_n nicephorus_n and_o theodoret._n how_o by_o tradition_n from_o the_o apostle_n the_o primitive_a christian_n be_v accustom_v to_o sign_n themselves_o frequent_o with_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross._n the_o first_o and_o worst_a heretic_n be_v enemy_n of_o that_o sign_n christ_n cross_n multiply_v by_o miracle_n in_o st._n paulinus_n his_o time_n protestant_n miracle_n be_v but_o cheat_v not_o one_o of_o they_o true_a protestant_n agree_v with_o pagan_n heretic_n and_o magician_n in_o contemn_v miracle_n and_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross._n how_o the_o devil_n dread_v the_o same_o sect_n iu._n miracle_n in_o confirmation_n of_o the_o catholic_n worship_n of_o jmage_n relate_v by_o the_o most_o eminent_a author_n of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n and_o by_o the_o 2._o council_n of_o nice_a a_o 787._o wherein_o be_v 350._o bishop_n st._n peter_n shadow_n be_v the_o image_n of_o his_o body_n and_o by_o scripture_n act._n 5.15_o it_o appear_v to_o have_v wrought_v miracle_n the_o protestant_a imposture_n concern_v christ_n statue_n that_o julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la break_v confute_v s._n john_n d●mascens_n hand_n that_o be_v cut_v off_o by_o the_o practice_n of_o image-breaker_n restore_v by_o his_o pray_v at_o our_o lady_n image_n the_o protestant_a evasion_n of_o civil_a and_o religious_a worship_n confute_v sect_n v._o miracle_n relate_v by_o s._n austin_n s._n ambrose_n s._n gregory_n nazianzen_n s._n chrysostom_n s._n hierom_n s._n optatus_n s._n bede_n s._n bernard_n s._n anselm_n and_o other_o in_o confirmation_n of_o prayer_n to_o saint_n worship_v their_o relic_n of_o the_o virtue_n of_o holy_a water_n the_o sacrament_n of_o confirmaon_n confession_n and_o extreme_a unction_n the_o doctrine_n of_o indulgence_n confirm_v by_o the_o same_o miracle_n that_o confirm_v worship_n of_o saint_n pilgrimage_n etc._n etc._n the_o truth_n of_o all_o s._n thomas_n of_o canterburye_n miracle_n evidence_v by_o one_o that_o fox_n recount_v and_o pick_v out_o to_o discredit_v the_o test_n what_o little_a reason_n protestant_n have_v to_o suspect_v our_o catholic_n miracle_n of_o forgery_n how_o severe_a the_o roman_a church_n be_v in_o the_o scrutiny_n and_o punishment_n of_o such_o imposture_n reflection_n upon_o bishop_n tailor_n treatise_n of_o confirmation_n confession_n and_o extreme_a unction_n maintain_v to_o be_v sacrament_n by_o ancient_a father_n s._n bede_n holiness_n and_o learning_n acknowledge_v by_o protestant_n he_o relate_v miracle_n whereby_o the_o error_n of_o protestancy_n be_v confute_v how_o absurd_o protestant_n contemn_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o holy_a father_n in_o miracle_n admit_v it_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n how_o ridiculous_a john_n fox_n his_o miracle_n be_v how_o unwise_o the_o prelatic_a clergy_n countenance_n his_o act_n and_o monument_n that_o have_v so_o spread_v puritanism_n in_o england_n a_o parallel_n between_o protestancy_n and_o mahometism_n finis_fw-la the_o conclusion_n to_o the_o right_n honourable_a the_o committee_n of_o parliament_n for_o religion_n may_v it_o please_v your_o honour_n venerable_a st._n bede_n in_o his_o history_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n recount_v how_o st._n austin_n the_o monk_n 700._o and_o our_o apostle_n send_v by_o st._n gregory_n the_o great_a bishop_n of_o rome_n to_o convert_v our_o saxon_a ancestor_n from_o paganism_n to_o christian_a religion_n arrive_v at_o the_o isle_n of_o tanet_n in_o kent_n give_v notice_n unto_o king_n ethelbert_n than_o a_o
catholic_n doctrine_n be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o sovereignty_n and_o safety_n of_o king_n and_o with_o civil_a society_n between_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n pag._n 443_o bishop_n mortons_n falsification_n about_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o kill_v a_o tyrant_n pag._n 444_o bishop_n mortons_n falsification_n of_o catholic_n against_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o prince_n and_o how_o he_o excuse_v himself_o by_o say_v he_o receive_v it_o from_o the_o archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n pag._n 445_o mortons_n answer_n in_o which_o see_v a_o imposture_n continue_v against_o catholic_n by_o the_o whole_a convocation_n of_o the_o protestant_a clergy_n in_o their_o synod_n hold_v anno_fw-la 1603._o pag._n 546_o the_o protestant_a falsification_n to_o persuade_v that_o the_o canon-law_n do_v warrant_n deposition_n of_o king_n by_o the_o pope_n pag._n 447_o a_o protestant_a falsification_n to_o persuade_v that_o catholic_n may_v cheat_v any_o excommunicate_v person_n of_o their_o lawful_a debt_n pag._n 449_o bishop_n mortons_n falsification_n to_o persuade_v that_o catholic_n hold_v it_o lawful_a to_o murder_n and_o massacre_n protestant_n pag._n 451_o bishop_n morton_n falsification_n to_o assert_v the_o king_n supremacy_n pag._n 453_o ten_o falsification_n set_v down_o together_o by_o bishop_n morton_n to_o prove_v that_o we_o hold_v that_o pope_n can_v be_v depose_v nor_o be_v heretic_n pag._n 457_o primate_n bramhall_n falsification_n to_o prove_v that_o pope_n may_v and_o have_v decree_v heretical_a doctrine_n pag._n 458_o it_o be_v prove_v by_o reason_n and_o example_n that_o no_o religion_n be_v so_o little_a dangerous_a to_o the_o sovereignty_n and_o safety_n of_o king_n or_o so_o advantageous_a to_o the_o peace_n and_o prosperity_n of_o subject_n as_o the_o roman_a catholic_n notwithstanding_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n pag._n 459_o protestant_n can_v clear_v their_o religion_n from_o their_o doctrine_n and_o danger_n of_o depose_v sovereign_n and_o dispose_v of_o their_o kingdom_n pag._n 470_o that_o protestant_n can_v never_o prove_v any_o of_o the_o wilful_a falsification_n wherewith_o they_o charge_v roman_n catholic_n writer_n but_o themselves_o be_v convict_v of_o that_o crime_n wheresoever_o they_o attempt_v to_o make_v good_a their_o charge_n against_o we_o pag._n 473_o bellarmin_n accuse_v by_o sutcliff_n of_o falsify_v the_o general_n council_n of_o chalcedon_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n pag._n 474_o how_o protestant_n be_v convict_v by_o bellarmin_n of_o hold_v twenty_o ancient_a condemn_a heresy_n and_o how_o sutcliff_n and_o bishop_n morton_n to_o clear_v they_o of_o six_o only_o fourteen_o seem_n they_o confess_v do_v falsify_v the_o father_n and_o catholic_n author_n about_o worship_v of_o image_n pag._n 476_o two_o pelagian_a heresy_n impute_v to_o protestant_n and_o how_o they_o falsify_v to_o clear_v themselves_o of_o the_o one_o and_o say_v nothing_o of_o the_o other_o pag._n 477_o two_o novatian_a heresy_n impute_v to_o protestant_n the_o one_o answer_v with_o silence_n the_o other_o with_o falsify_v pag._n 478_o the_o manichean_a heresy_n against_o freewill_n impute_v to_o protestant_n and_o how_o pitiful_o answer_v by_o bishop_n morton_n pag._n 479._o how_o bishop_n morton_n answer_v to_o bellarmin_n imputation_n of_o arianism_n unto_o protestant_n pag._n 479._o how_o morton_n falsify_v and_o abuse_v bellarmine_n who_o impute_v the_o denial_n of_o christ_n real_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n to_o protestant_n pag._n 480._o falsification_n object_v against_o cardinal_n baronius_n by_o mr._n sutcliff_n pag._n 483._o calumny_n and_o falsification_n of_o luther_n calvin_n archbishop_n laud_n and_o primate_n usher_n to_o discredit_v catholic_n religion_n against_o their_o own_o knowledge_n and_o conscience_n pag._n 487._o of_o calvin_n calumny_n against_o catholic_n and_o their_o doctrine_n pag._n 488_o fraud_n falsification_n and_o calumny_n of_o primate_n usher_n against_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n pag._n 491._o usher_n falsification_n against_o confession_n pag._n 492._o his_o falsification_n against_o absolution_n of_o sin_n pag._n 493._o against_o purgatory_n pag._n 494_o against_o worship_a saint_n and_o their_o relic_n pag._n 496_o against_o prayer_n to_o saint_n pag._n 499_o of_o archbishop_n laud'_v fraud_n and_o falsification_n how_o unsincere_o bishop_n laud_n will_v fain_o excuse_v the_o modern_a greek_a heresy_n concern_v the_o procession_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n pag._n 502_o how_o bishop_n laud_n abuses_n st._n augustine_n to_o make_v protestant_n believe_v that_o general_a council_n may_v err_v against_o scripture_n and_o evident_a reason_n pag._n 504_o vicentius_n lirinensis_n abuse_v by_o laud_n to_o prove_v the_o fallibility_n of_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n pag._n 507_o how_o bishop_n laud_n falsify_v occam_n to_o infringe_v st._n augustin_n authority_n concern_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n in_o succeed_a age_n as_o well_o as_o in_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n and_o be_v force_v by_o his_o error_n to_o resolve_v the_o prelatic_a faith_n into_o the_o light_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o private_a spirit_n of_o fanatic_n which_o he_o paliat_v under_o the_o name_n of_o grace_n and_o thereby_o warrant_v all_o rebellion_n against_o church_n and_o state_n pag._n 509_o divers_a fraud_n and_o falsification_n of_o bishop_n laud_n to_o defend_v that_o protestant_n be_v not_o schismatic_n pag._n 512_o whether_o it_o be_v piety_n or_o policy_n to_o permit_v the_o protestant_a clergy_n of_o these_o three_o kingdom_n to_o enjoy_v the_o church_n revenue_n for_o maintain_v by_o such_o fraud_n and_o falsification_n as_o hitherto_o have_v be_v allege_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n which_o also_o they_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v fallible_a and_o by_o consequence_n for_o all_o they_o know_v false_a and_o h●re_o the_o say_v revenue_n may_v be_v conscientious_o apply_v to_o the_o use_n and_o ease_n of_o the_o people_n without_o any_o danger_n of_o sacrilege_n or_o any_o disturbance_n to_o the_o government_n if_o a_o public_a trial_n of_o both_o clergy_n sincerity_n be_v allow_v and_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n grant_v pag._n 521_o the_o same_o further_o demonstrate_v and_o how_o by_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n or_o by_o tolerate_v the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n by_o act_n of_o parliament_n the_o british_a monarchy_n will_v become_v the_o most_o considerable_a of_o all_o christendom_n peaceable_a at_o home_n and_o recover_v its_o right_n abroad_o how_o evident_o it_o be_v the_o mutual_a interest_n of_o spain_n and_o england_n to_o be_v in_o a_o perpetual_a league_n against_o france_n and_o how_o advantageous_a it_o be_v for_o spain_n to_o put_v flanders_n into_o english_a hand_n pag._n 534_o the_o king_n be_v right_a to_o france_n pag._n 544_o my_o lord_n of_o clarendin_n policy_n censure_v by_o all_o wise_a men._n pag._n 548._o part_n 4._o the_o roman_a catholic_n religion_n in_o every_o particular_a wherein_o it_o differ_v from_o the_o protestant_n confirm_v by_o undeniable_a miracle_n that_o such_o miracle_n as_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n in_o the_o canonization_n of_o saint_n be_v true_a miracle_n and_o the_o doctrine_n which_o they_o confirm_v can_v be_v reject_v without_o deny_v or_o doubt_v of_o god_n veracity_n and_o how_o every_o protestant_n do_v see_v true_a miracle_n though_o he_o do_v not_o reflect_v upon_o they_o in_o confirmation_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n faith_n pag._n 553_o the_o miracle_n of_o st._n januarius_n of_o naples_n pag._n 555_o the_o famous_a and_o undeniable_a miracle_n of_o st._n francis_n xaverius_n wrought_v on_o the_o person_n of_o marcello_n mastrillo_n pag._n 556_o antichrist_n miracle_n be_v not_o credible_a if_o compare_v with_o we_o pag._n 561_o of_o visible_a miracle_n see_v though_o not_o observe_v by_o every_o protestant_n in_o confirmation_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n faith_n the_o difference_n between_o true_a and_o false_a miracle_n pag._n 562_o of_o true_a miracle_n relate_v in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n by_o man_n of_o great_a authority_n in_o every_o age_n to_o confirm_v the_o particular_a mystery_n of_o our_o catholic_n faith_n and_o that_o sense_n of_o scripture_n wherein_o roman_a catholic_n differ_v from_o protestant_n pag._n 566_o of_o miracle_n relate_v by_o st._n chrysostom_n st._n gregory_n nazianzen_n etc._n etc._n in_o confirmation_n of_o transubstantiation_n adoration_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n communion_n under_o one_o kind_a and_o purgatory_n pag._n 567_o primate_n usher_n falsification_n to_o discredit_v two_o miracle_n pag._n 569_o how_o protestant_n falsify_v and_o corrupt_v the_o very_a statute_n and_o law-book_n pag._n 572_o miracle_n for_o the_o mass._n pag._n 573._o miracle_n for_o purgatory_n pag._n 573_o miracle_n to_o confirm_v the_o worship_n and_o virtue_n of_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross._n pag._n 576_o miracle_n in_o confirmation_n of_o the_o catholic_n worship_n of_o image_n pag._n 581_o the_o protestant_n distinction_n of_o civil_a and_o religious_a worship_n misapply_v by_o minister_n to_o delude_v
evident_o follow_v that_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o deal_v thus_o with_o spiritual_a superior_n it_o must_v be_v as_o lawful_a a_o fortiori_fw-la to_o deal_v after_o the_o same_o manner_n and_o upon_o the_o same_o ground_n of_o every_o private_a man_n interpretation_n of_o scripture_n with_o temporal_a superior_n to_o imagine_v therefore_o that_o by_o a_o particular_a article_n of_o religion_n or_o by_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n against_o presbiterian_o quaker_n anabaptist_n etc._n etc._n in_o favour_n of_o the_o subject_n property_n to_o temporal_a good_n or_o of_o the_o king_n prerogative_n and_o sovereignty_n such_o man_n mind_n or_o mouth_n will_v be_v stop_v from_o raise_v tumult_n and_o run_v into_o a_o rebellion_n so_o clear_o warant_v by_o the_o fundamental_a principle_n of_o the_o protestant_a reformation_n be_v but_o a_o fancy_n not_o to_o be_v rely_v upon_o by_o any_o discreet_a person_n dudley_n earl_n of_o wa●wick_n and_o afterward_o duke_n of_o northumberland_n observe_v that_o by_o this_o foundation_n of_o protestancy_n the_o very_a ground_n of_o allegiance_n and_o obedience_n not_o only_o to_o the_o spiritual_a but_o also_o to_o the_o civil_a magistrate_n be_v undermine_v resolve_v to_o make_v his_o son_n king_n of_o england_n and_o in_o order_n thereunto_o marry_v he_o to_o the_o lady_n jane_n grey_n a_o protestant_n of_o the_o blood_n royal_a not_o doubt_v but_o that_o they_o who_o have_v renounce_v all_o subordination_n unto_o their_o spiritual_a superior_n under_o the_o pretext_n of_o a_o reformation_n will_v upon_o the_o same_o score_n prefer_v the_o lady_n jane_n to_o the_o crown_n before_o the_o princess_n mary_n a_o constant_n catholic_n therefore_o after_o that_o he_o have_v behead_v the_o protector_n and_o poison_v the_o king_n he_o crown_v his_o son_n wife_n with_o the_o concurrence_n and_o applause_n of_o the_o prelatic_a clergy_n cranmer_n ridly_n etc._n etc._n and_o with_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o protestant_a nobility_n and_o city_n of_o london_n but_o protestancy_n not_o be_v at_o that_o time_n so_o deep_o root_v nor_o so_o large_o spread_v in_o the_o nation_n the_o catholic_n gentry_n and_o commons_o together_o with_o q._n mary_n great_a courage_n and_o resolution_n quash_v this_o polititian_n design_n and_o bring_v he_o to_o due_a punishment_n upon_o the_o scaffold_n he_o declare_v that_o he_o never_o have_v be_v a_o protestant_n in_o his_o judgement_n and_o only_o make_v use_n of_o its_o profession_n and_o principle_n for_o temporal_a end_n as_o to_o raise_v his_o family_n etc._n etc._n he_o advertiss_v the_o people_n of_o the_o new_a religion_n inconsistency_n with_o peace_n and_o quiet_a that_o its_o clergy_n be_v but_o trumpet_n of_o sedition_n the_o substance_n of_o his_o speech_n be_v set_v down_o by_o d._n r_o heylin_n in_o these_o word_n 19_o he_o admonish_v the_o spectator_n to_o stand_v to_o the_o religion_n of_o their_o ancestor_n reject_v that_o of_o late_a date_n which_o have_v occasion_v all_o the_o misery_n of_o the_o forego_n thurty_a year_n and_o that_o for_o prevention_n for_o the_o future_a if_o they_o desire_v to_o present_v their_o soul_n unspotted_a in_o the_o sight_n of_o god_n and_o be_v true_o affect_v to_o their_o country_n they_o shall_v expel_v those_o tempest_n of_o sedition_n the_o preacher_n of_o the_o reform_a religion_n that_o for_o himself_o what_o soever_o have_v otherwise_o be_v pretend_v he_o profess_v no_o other_o religion_n then_o that_o of_o his_o father_n for_o testimony_n whereof_o he_o appeal_v to_o his_o good_a friend_n and_o ghostly_a father_n the_o lord_n bishop_n of_o worcester_n and_o finaly_a that_o be_v blind_v with_o ambition_n he_o have_v be_v content_v to_o make_v rack_n of_o his_o conscience_n by_o temporize_v for_o which_o he_o profess_v himself_o sincere_o repentant_a and_o so_o acknowledge_v the_o justice_n of_o his_o death_n a_o declaration_n say_v d._n r_o heylin_n very_o unseasonable_a whether_o true_a or_o false_a as_o that_o which_o render_v he_o less_o pity_v by_o the_o one_o side_n and_o more_o scorn_v by_o the_o other_o this_o be_v a_o more_o politic_a than_o pious_a observation_n of_o d._n r_o heylin_n will_v he_o not_o have_v man_n confess_v their_o fault_n and_o profess_v their_o ●aith_n when_o they_o be_v die_v and_o will_v he_o have_v they_o prefer_v the_o vanity_n of_o the_o pity_n or_o scorn_v of_o the_o world_n when_o they_o be_v to_o bid_v the_o whole_a world_n adieu_o before_o the_o satisfaction_n and_o salvation_n of_o the_o soul_n i_o fear_v too_o many_o of_o d._n r_o heylins_n principle_n not_o only_o defer_v until_o the_o last_o hour_n the_o profession_n of_o the_o truth_n but_o even_o then_o dissemble_v think_v a_o declaration_n and_o recantation_n of_o their_o error_n at_o that_o tym●_n either_o unseasonable_a or_o unpardonable_a and_o prefer_v the_o vanity_n of_o the_o world_n opinion_n before_o the_o necessity_n of_o a_o conversion_n unto_o the_o true_a faith_n q._n marys_n danger_n end_v not_o with_o dudlys_n death_n 35._o it_o last_v as_o long_o as_o there_o be_v any_o man_n to_o head_n the_o protestant_a party_n and_o to_o put_v the_o people_n in_o mind_n of_o its_o principle_n first_o the_o duke_n of_o suffolck_n and_o other_o plot_v the_o set_n up_o once_o more_o of_o the_o lady_n jane_n grey_n and_o begin_v the_o execution_n thereof_o by_o their_o proclamation_n against_o q._n marys_n intend_v marriage_n with_o philip_n of_o spain_n this_o occasion_v the_o lady_n jan_n death_n other_o zealot_n of_o the_o protestant_a religion_n conclude_v a_o marriage_n between_o the_o lord_n courtny_n and_o the_o lady_n elizabeth_n their_o plot_n be_v discover_v as_o also_o wyat_n rebellion_n suppress_v all_o these_o thing_n be_v do_v by_o the_o advice_n and_o assistance_n of_o the_o protestant_a clergy_n that_o remain_v in_o england_n and_o be_v commend_v by_o such_o of_o they_o as_o live_v abroad_o d._n r_o john_n poinet_n the_o last_o bishop_n of_o winchester_n be_v not_o only_o of_o wyat_n council_n 35_o but_o continue_v in_o his_o camp_n until_o he_o perceive_v the_o design_n will_v not_o take_v then_o he_o depart_v tell_v the_o rebel_n he_o will_v pray_v for_o their_o good_a success_n goodman_n and_o knox_n rail_v in_o their_o book_n against_o the_o queen_n and_o calvin_n in_o his_o comment_n upon_o amos_n term_v her_o proserpina_n 14_o goodman_n have_v this_o expression_n wyatt_n do_v but_o his_o duty_n and_o it_o be_v but_o the_o duty_n of_o all_o other_o that_o profess_v the_o gospel_n to_o have_v rise_v with_o he_o for_o the_o maintenance_n of_o the_o same_o his_o cause_n be_v just_a and_o they_o be_v all_o traitor_n that_o take_v not_o part_n with_o he_o o_o noble_a wyatt_n thou_o be_v now_o with_o god_n and_o those_o worthy_a man_n that_o die_v in_o that_o happy_a enterprise_n this_o be_v the_o primitive_a spirit_n these_o the_o first_o effect_n of_o our_o english_a protestancy_n not_o only_o the_o queen_n out_o of_o a_o zeal_n to_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n but_o the_o privy_a council_n and_o parliament_n move_v with_o a_o desire_n of_o peace_n see_v it_o be_v moraly_a impossible_a to_o govern_v people_n protestant_o principled_a resolve_v to_o restore_v the_o ancient_a doctrine_n wherewith_o their_o ancestor_n have_v so_o long_o prosper_v and_o to_o suppress_v the_o protestant_a novelty_n by_o the_o rigour_n of_o the_o law_n former_o make_v against_o heresy_n which_o have_v be_v repeal_v at_o the_o instance_n of_o the_o reform_a preacher_n and_o prelate_n in_o k._n edward_n 6._o reign_n and_o therefore_o as_o d._n r_o bancroft_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n confess_v in_o his_o book_n of_o dangerous_a position_n pag._n 63._o tho_o q._n mary_n be_v a_o princess_n of_o nature_n and_o disposition_n very_o mild_a and_o incline_v to_o pity_n yet_o she_o and_o her_o government_n be_v tax_v with_o too_o much_o severity_n by_o they_o that_o consider_v not_o the_o nature_n and_o consequence_n of_o protestancy_n if_o tinker_n tailor_n tapster_n tanner_n and_o spinster_n will_v needs_o run_v into_o the_o fire_n for_o defend_v the_o fond_a invention_n of_o cranmer_n and_o of_o other_o know_a temporiser_n who_o can_v help_v it_o neither_o patience_n nor_o pain_n be_v want_v in_o the_o catholic_n clergy_n to_o reduce_v they_o to_o the_o truth_n but_o their_o obstinacy_n and_o the_o vanity_n of_o die_a martyr_n forsooth_o make_v they_o prefer_v their_o own_o private_a sense_n of_o scripture_n before_o that_o of_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n so_o charitable_a be_v the_o catholic_n that_o they_o delay_v the_o penalty_n of_o such_o as_o they_o can_v not_o convert_v and_o connive_v at_o they_o who_o endeavour_v to_o escape_v by_o absent_v or_o conceal_v themselves_o and_o as_o for_o cranmer_n ridly_n latimer_n and_o the_o other_o ringleader_n of_o protestancy_n they_o have_v liberty_n give_v they_o to_o maintain_v their_o cause_n in_o public_a disputation_n with_o the_o time_n book_n and_o notary_n
so_o zealous_a as_o every_o protestant_n be_v in_o we_o if_o any_o protestant_n live_v then_o why_o do_v not_o they_o speack_v or_o write_v be_v they_o all_o temporiser_n and_o turncoat_n or_o be_v they_o all_o so_o blind_a dumb_a deaf_a and_o dull_a that_o not_o one_o of_o they_o can_v see_v hear_v reprehend_v or_o observe_v practice_n and_o ceremony_n so_o erroneous_a obvious_a and_o offensive_a the_o protestant_a evasion_n or_o answer_n to_o this_o evident_a demonstration_n be_v both_o frivolous_a and_o fallacious_a their_o chief_a doctor_n similitude_n acknowledge_v they_o can_v not_o tell_v by_o who_o nor_o at_o what_o time_n the_o popish_a error_n be_v broach_v and_o say_v that_o error_n in_o religion_n may_v creep_v as_o insensible_o into_o the_o church_n as_o a_o building_n may_v decay_v or_o white_a hair_n grow_v in_o man_n head_n as_o if_o forsooth_o all_o and_o every_o christian_a of_o the_o world_n and_o particular_o the_o pastor_n and_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n be_v as_o much_o concern_v in_o the_o observation_n of_o every_o gray_a hair_n and_o head_n or_o in_o the_o preservation_n of_o every_o build_n from_o decay_n as_o they_o be_v in_o observe_v and_o preserve_v the_o purity_n and_o integrity_n of_o every_o article_n of_o faith_n and_o in_o oppose_v the_o least_o novelty_n contrary_a to_o the_o same_o beside_o the_o outward_a profession_n and_o propagation_n of_o those_o point_n of_o popery_n that_o protestant_n suppose_v to_o have_v creep_v insensible_o into_o the_o church_n can_v neither_o be_v conceal_v nor_o confound_v with_o the_o contradictory_n principle_n and_o practice_n of_o protestancy_n as_o a_o white_a hair_n may_v be_v easy_o confound_v and_o conceal_v with_o other_o that_o cover_v or_o come_v near_o it_o in_o colour_n moreover_o the_o change_n from_o youth_n and_o stately_a building_n into_o gray_a hair_n and_o ruinous_a edifice_n be_v wrought_v insensible_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o time_n without_o any_o perceptible_a concurrence_n of_o any_o other_o cause_n time_n wear_v out_o and_o consume_v structure_n strength_n youth_n and_o beauty_n whether_o man_n gaze_v or_o not_o gaze_v upon_o such_o gay_a object_n but_o the_o plant_n preach_v or_o inculcate_v of_o new_a doctrine_n and_o new_a ceremony_n of_o religion_n be_v of_o a_o quite_o contrary_a nature_n they_o have_v not_o such_o dependency_n of_o time_n alone_o they_o must_v be_v effect_n of_o attention_n and_o observation_n of_o discourse_n and_o disput_n of_o sermon_n and_o catechism_n they_o must_v be_v also_o profess_v and_o practise_v in_o the_o view_n of_o the_o world_n time_n without_o these_o and_o the_o like_a notorious_a practice_n and_o observation_n can_v not_o alter_v christian_a religion_n nor_o induce_v a_o contrary_a superstition_n last_o grant_v there_o be_v no_o fallacy_n in_o the_o similitude_n nor_o disparity_n in_o the_o comparison_n the_o example_n be_v better_o retort_v against_o protestancy_n then_o apply_v to_o popery_n for_o though_o hair_n may_v begin_v to_o grow_v white_a and_o building_n to_o decay_v without_o any_o great_a notice_n take_v of_o their_o change_n yet_o when_o either_o come_v to_o the_o height_n or_o even_o to_o the_o mediocrity_n of_o their_o change_n that_o change_n be_v observe_v by_o as_o many_o as_o have_v eye_n to_o see_v and_o be_v not_o only_o observe_v but_o resent_v and_o remedy_v according_a to_o their_o power_n by_o they_o who_o be_v most_o concern_v in_o such_o decay_n and_o defect_n if_o then_o a_o white_a head_n be_v so_o easy_o discern_v from_o black_a and_o a_o ruine_a edifice_n from_o a_o new_a palace_n and_o a_o decay_a face_n from_o a_o beauty_n by_o all_o kind_n of_o people_n that_o make_v use_v of_o their_o sense_n and_o if_o so_o much_o industry_n be_v use_v by_o they_o who_o be_v most_o sensible_a of_o those_o imperfection_n to_o hinder_v their_o further_a progress_n or_o appearance_n how_o be_v it_o possible_a that_o all_o or_o any_o orthodox_n christian_n be_v so_o great_o and_o particular_o concern_v in_o the_o purity_n and_o truth_n of_o their_o religion_n and_o in_o the_o observation_n of_o its_o rite_n and_o ceremony_n can_v be_v for_o many_o age_n so_o stupid_a as_o not_o to_o distinguish_v its_o doctrine_n and_o profession_n from_o the_o quite_o contrary_a or_o so_o careless_a in_o apply_v remedy_n against_o the_o growth_n and_o continuance_n of_o error_n both_o damnable_a and_o discernible_a be_v it_o not_o more_o probable_a and_o possible_a that_o martin_n luther_n a_o man_n so_o impious_a proud_a and_o passionate_a that_o him-self_n acknowledge_v he_o do_v retain_v idolatry_n in_o the_o church_n at_o wittenbergh_n to_o vex_v his_o scholar_n carolostadius_fw-la shall_v to_o disgrace_v the_o pope_n and_o papist_n his_o enemy_n be_v seduce_v by_o his_o confess_a disputation_n and_o submission_n in_o his_o diabolical_a doctrine_n then_o that_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n father_n and_o counsel_n before_o luther_n for_o at_o least_o 1000_o year_n shall_v not_o only_o forsake_v christ_n doctrine_n but_o mistake_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n now_o pretend_v to_o be_v so_o clear_a and_o manifest_a to_o every_o protestant_n that_o all_o the_o world_n do_v conspire_v and_o concur_v to_o such_o a_o apostasy_n be_v not_o credible_a that_o they_o who_o do_v not_o concur_v shall_v sit_v quiet_a and_o connive_v be_v as_o unlikly_a if_o no_o pastor_n nor_o prelate_n have_v the_o courage_n to_o oppose_v idolatry_n and_o superstition_n sure_o some_o one_o or_o other_o will_v have_v have_v the_o curiosity_n to_o describe_v the_o occasion_n beginning_n and_o progress_n of_o so_o great_a and_o remarkable_a a_o change_n and_o will_v mention_v if_o not_o condemn_v the_o stupidity_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o not_o oppose_v doctrine_n so_o inconscionable_a and_o unreasonable_a and_o yet_o there_o be_v no_o tradition_n thereof_o nor_o a_o syllable_n in_o any_o history_n sacred_a or_o profane_a of_o this_o suppose_a change_n in_o any_o on_o point_n of_o popery_n nor_o so_o much_o as_o the_o least_o sign_n thereof_o in_o any_o monument_n of_o antiquity_n sect_n ii_o the_o protestant_n evasion_n of_o the_o cleverness_n of_o scripture_n against_o our_o roman_a doctrine_n as_o also_o of_o the_o invisibility_n of_o their_o own_o church_n confute_v and_o the_o incredibility_n of_o the_o suppose_a change_n and_o apostasy_n prove_v by_o the_o difference_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n and_o protestant_a principle_n the_o second_o evasion_n of_o protestant_a writer_n be_v that_o they_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o inquire_v when_o or_o where_o our_o popish_a error_n creep_v into_o the_o church_n or_o become_v so_o universal_a but_o think_v it_o sufficient_a to_o prove_v by_o scripture_n that_o popery_n be_v not_o christ_n doctrine_n this_o shift_n be_v no_o less_o absurd_a than_o the_o former_a because_o they_o suppose_v for_o grant_v what_o be_v deny_v and_o the_o subject_n to_o our_o dispute_n the_o controversy_n between_o protestant_n and_o catholic_n be_v whether_o the_o roman_a tenet_n be_v contrary_a to_o scripture_n protestant_n say_v they_o be_v and_o prove_v it_o because_o forsooth_o scripture_n be_v contrary_a to_o the_o roman_a tenet_n we_o deny_v it_o and_o they_o prove_v it_o only_o by_o pretend_v that_o the_o letter_n and_o sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v evident_a for_o the_o protestant_a doctrine_n and_o by_o consequence_n they_o must_v say_v that_o all_o papist_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 1500._o or_o at_o least_o 1000_o year_n have_v be_v either_o so_o witless_a as_o not_o to_o understand_v what_o be_v evident_a or_o so_o wicked_a as_o to_o contradict_v evidence_n and_o the_o cleverness_n of_o god_n written-word_n and_o meaning_n let_v any_o protestant_n who_o have_v so_o much_o sense_n as_o to_o understand_v that_o nothing_o but_o the_o obscurity_n of_o scripture_n can_v make_v it_o the_o subject_n of_o disput_n and_o occasion_n diversity_n of_o opinion_n among_o so_o honest_a and_o learned_a christian_n be_v judge_n whether_o the_o controversy_n between_o we_o and_o lutheran_n presbiterian_o and_o prelaticks_n etc._n etc._n be_v not_o a_o demonstration_n that_o the_o true_a sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v not_o clear_a and_o evident_a in_o the_o controvert_v text_n and_o if_o the_o dissent_n and_o dissension_n among_o honest_a man_n and_o learned_a scripturist_n be_v a_o undeniable_a proof_n and_o evidence_n of_o scriptur_n obscurity_n whether_o it_o be_v not_o great_a obstinacy_n in_o protestant_n to_o maintain_v that_o popery_n be_v evident_o condemn_v in_o scripture_n and_o that_o so_o many_o thousand_o of_o honest_a and_o learned_a papist_n can_v not_o or_o will_v not_o discover_v what_o be_v clear_a to_o every_o illiterate_a protestant_n or_o if_o they_o do_v will_v not_o embrace_v that_o truth_n to_o which_o their_o judgement_n and_o god_n clear_a word_n do_v direct_v they_o until_o the_o year_n 1517._o no_o man_n ever_o pretend_v the_o cleverness_n of_o scripture_n for_o protestancy_n at_o that_o time_n martin_n lather_n see_v all_o
protestancy_n a_o infallible_a mark_n of_o a_o false_a church_n and_o of_o heretic_n who_o endeavour_n say_v tertullian_n 42._o be_v not_o to_o convert_v pagan_n but_o to_o pervert_v christian_n negotium_fw-la est_fw-la illis_fw-la haereticis_fw-la non_fw-la ethnicos_fw-la convertendi_fw-la sed_fw-la nostros_fw-la evertendi_fw-la their_o success_n in_o that_o particular_a be_v no_o argument_n that_o god_n approve_v of_o their_o religion_n but_o be_v only_o a_o sign_n of_o our_o human_a frailty_n and_o perverse_a inclination_n to_o vice_n and_o liberty_n and_o they_o who_o say_v that_o the_o protestant_a reformation_n need_v no_o other_o miracle_n to_o prove_v that_o it_o be_v divine_a but_o its_o propagation_n mistake_v and_o misapply_v the_o argument_n the_o miracle_n consist_v not_o in_o that_o many_o embra●●_n protestancy_n but_o rather_o in_o that_o any_o at_o all_o reject_v or_o forsake_v a_o religion_n so_o favourable_a to_o sensuality_n of_o li●●_n and_o singularity_n of_o judgement_n be_v it_o not_o a_o argument_n and_o a_o miracle_n of_o god_n special_a and_o supernatural_a grace_n that_o any_o one_o temporal_a catholic_n sovereign_n reject_v so_o absolute_a and_o advantageous_a a_o jurisdiction_n over_o these_o subject_n as_o the_o spiritual_a supremacy_n that_o bishop_n prefer_v the_o catholic_n subordination_n to_o the_o pope_n before_o the_o protestant_a equality_n that_o catholic_n priest_n contemn_v the_o convenience_n and_o co●●●nt_v which_o protestant_a minister_n find_v in_o a_o marry_a life_n 〈◊〉_d ●hat_n the_o catholic_n laity_n change_v not_o their_o wife_n or_o husband_n according_a to_o the_o principle_n and_o practice_n 〈◊〉_d protestancy_n and_o not_o only_o contradict_v their_o sense_n in_o the_o 〈…〉_z transubstantiation_n but_o dis-own_a the_o protestant_n pretend_v right_o of_o every_o private_a person_n to_o judge_n according_a to_o his_o own_o sense_n of_o 〈…〉_z all_o controversy_n of_o christian_a religion_n a_o reformation_n so_o indulgent_a and_o oblige_v to_o every_o man_n and_o woman_n of_o what_o ●●ate_n and_o condition_n soever_o can_v as_o little_a want_n prosely_v as_o the_o 〈◊〉_d neither_o be_v the_o multitude_n of_o believer_n more_o a_o miracle_n 〈…〉_z p●●●estant_n then_o in_o the_o mahometan_a or_o any_o other_o popular_a 〈◊〉_d please_v religion_n sect_n viii_o protestant_n mistake_v in_o the_o consistency_n of_o their_o justify_v faith_n with_o justice_n or_o civil_a government_n demonstrate_v in_o the_o new_a setlement_n of_o irland_n and_o in_o the_o persecution_n against_o catholic_n in_o england_n and_o yet_o the_o king_n and_o his_o government_n vindicate_v from_o the_o note_n of_o tyranny_n or_o the_o breach_n of_o public_a faith_n because_o his_o minister_n be_v compel_v by_o a_o necessity_n of_o state_n to_o run_v with_o the_o spirit_n and_o principle_n of_o protestancy_n notwithstanding_o all_o which_o the_o irish_a and_o english_a roman_a catholic_n be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n not_o to_o attempt_v the_o recovery_n of_o their_o right_n or_o religion_n by_o arm_n but_o rather_o to_o submit_v them-selve_n to_o his_o majesty_n and_o suffer_v their_o cross_n with_o christian_a patience_n all_o protestant_n agree_v in_o the_o doctrine_n of_o justification_n by_o only_a faith_n but_o seem_v to_o differ_v in_o that_o of_o good_a work_n and_o though_o all_o necessity_n of_o good_a work_n be_v in_o very_a deed_n exclude_v by_o the_o pretend_a sufficiency_n and_o efficacy_n of_o the_o protestant_a justify_v faith_n for_o in_o what_o need_n can_v a_o man_n stand_v of_o good_a work_n if_o he_o be_v sure_a of_o his_o justification_n and_o by_o consequence_n of_o his_o salvation_n by_o only_a faith_n but_o the_o scandal_n of_o the_o world_n at_o their_o dispense_n with_o the_o observation_n of_o the_o ten_o commandment_n as_o thing_n not_o require_v by_o christian_n and_o clear_o infer_v from_o their_o justification_n by_o only_a faith_n be_v so_o general_a that_o they_o disguise_v but_o never_o disow_v the_o doctrine_n and_o do_v yet_o stick_v to_o their_o principle_n though_o they_o dare_v not_o open_o allow_v the_o consequence_n they_o speak_v so_o spare_o in_o favour_n of_o good_a and_o gracious_a work_n that_o no_o one_o protestant_a church_n will_v attribute_v to_o they_o any_o merit_n congruity_n or_o influence_n upon_o either_o justification_n or_o salvation_n in_o so_o much_o that_o our_o prelaticks_n who_o be_v more_o moderate_a than_o any_o other_o protestant_n in_o this_o particular_a will_v not_o grant_v that_o good_a work_n be_v command_v by_o god_n as_o if_o they_o be_v depend_v of_o our_o liberty_n or_o relate_v to_o our_o endeavour_n but_o only_o be_v command_v as_o unavoidable_a effect_n flow_v necessary_o from_o a_o protestant_n and_o justify_v faith_n as_o heat_n from_o fire_n or_o fruit_n from_o the_o tree_n we_o the_o prelatic_a church_n of_o england_n in_o the_o 11._o article_n of_o its_o religion_n say_v we_o be_v account_v righteous_a before_o god_n only_o for_o the_o merit_n of_o our_o lord_n and_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n by_o faith_n and_o not_o for_o our_o own_o work_n or_o deserve_n wherefore_o that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n only_o be_v a_o most_o wholesome_a doctrine_n and_o very_o full_a of_o comfort_n and_o in_o the_o 12._o article_n declare_v all_o beit_n that_o good_a work_n which_o be_v the_o fruit_n of_o faith_n and_o follow_v after_o justification_n can_v not_o put_v away_o our_o sin_n and_o endure_v the_o severity_n of_o god_n judgement_n yet_o be_v they_o please_v and_o acceptable_a to_o god_n in_o christ_n and_o do_v spring_n out_o necessary_o of_o a_o true_a and_o lively_a faith_n in_o so_o much_o that_o by_o they_o a_o lively_a faith_n may_v be_v as_o evident_o know_v as_o a_o tree_n discern_v by_o the_o fruit_n this_o explanation_n concern_v the_o necessity_n of_o good_a work_n mak●_n man_n as_o careless_a of_o they_o as_o if_o they_o have_v be_v impossible_a or_o not_o at_o all_o requisite_a because_o we_o be_v not_o solicitous_a of_o what_o we_o be_v sure_a of_o he_o who_o be_v well_o clad_v and_o sit_v by_o a_o good_a fire_n fear_v not_o to_o be_v starve_v with_o can_v neither_o do_v he_o think_v it_o necessary_a to_o use_v any_o other_o exercise_n or_o diligence_n for_o keep_v him-self_n warm_a if_o therefore_o good_a work_n do_v spring_v out_o as_o necessary_o of_o a_o true_a and_o lively_a faith_n as_o heat_n from_o fire_n or_o fruit_n from_o the_o tree_n any_o protestant_n that_o suppose_v him-self_n have_v that_o faith_n need_v not_o be_v solicitous_a of_o good_a work_n they_o will_v spring_v as_o a_o necessary_a consequent_a from_o his_o faith_n but_o because_o experience_n do_v show_v that_o the_o protestant_n who_o pretend_v to_o a_o justify_v faith_n have_v not_o always_o good_a work_n and_o many_o who_o be_v not_o protestant_n exercise_v moral_a virtue_n it_o be_v further_o declare_v by_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o the_o 13._o article_n for_o the_o comfort_n of_o protestant_n and_o confusion_n of_o papist_n that_o even_o the_o best_a moral_a work_n and_o virtue_n when_o they_o spring_v not_o of_o faith_n in_o jesus_n christ_n be_v no_o way_n please_v to_o god_n but_o rather_o have_v the_o nature_n of_o sin_n hence_o it_o be_v our_o english_a as_o well_o as_o other_o protestant_n hold_v express_o with_o luther_n that_o good_a 176._o work_n take_v their_o goodness_n of_o the_o worker_n and_o that_o no_o work_n be_v disallow_v of_o god_n unless_o the_o author_n be_v dis-allowed_n before_o that_o sin_n be_v not_o hurtful_a to_o he_o that_o actual_o believe_v and_o therefore_o when_o the_o faithful_a do_v sin_n they_o 1338._o diminish_v not_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n all_o the_o danger_n of_o sin_n be_v the_o evell_n example_n to_o our_o neighbour_n that_o david_n when_o he_o 41._o commit_v adultery_n be_v and_o remain_v the_o child_n of_o god_n that_o sin_n be_v say_v pardon_v as_o soon_o as_o commit_v the_o believe_a protestant_n have_v receive_v forgiuness_n of_o all_o his_o sin_n past_a and_o to_o come_v and_o that_o eris_fw-la there_o be_v no_o work_n better_o than_o other_o to_o make_v water_n to_o wash_v dish_n to_o be_v a_o sour_a or_o a_o apostle_n all_o be_v one_o to_o please_v god_n that_o he_o who_o 6._o do_v once_o true_o believe_v can_v afterward_o fall_v from_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n or_o loose_v his_o faith_n by_o any_o sin_n and_o therefore_o faith_n be_v either_o est_fw-la perpetual_a or_o no_o faith_n what_o a_o wide_a gap_n be_v open_v by_o this_o wicked_a doctrine_n to_o all_o kind_n of_o vice_n libertinism_n and_o rebellion_n be_v more_o visible_a in_o itself_o then_o consider_v by_o well_o meaning_n protestant_n who_o may_v tax_v the_o most_o dissolute_a of_o their_o brethren_n with_o be_v evil_a christian_o but_o must_v withal_o confess_v they_o to_o be_v good_a protestant_n as_o not_o violate_v the_o principle_n of_o their_o religion_n by_o which_o they_o be_v encourage_v to_o justify_v the_o most_o wicked_a action_n by_o
as_o a_o essential_a requisite_a the_o undoubted_a assurance_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o what_o be_v propose_v by_o the_o church_n as_o reveal_v by_o god_n and_o protestancy_n necessary_o suppose_v fallibility_n or_o possibility_n of_o error_n in_o that_o same_o church_n and_o proposal_n christian_a faith_n be_v there_o by_o render_v impossible_a and_o the_o protestant_a doctrine_n demonstrate_v 〈◊〉_d be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o nature_n of_o catholic_n religion_n with_o the_o certainty_n of_o divine_a faith_n and_o with_o the_o authority_n of_o christ_n church_n neither_o be_v the_o protestant_a doctrine_n in_o this_o particular_a less_o consistent_a with_o christian_a charity_n and_o humility_n then_o with_o catholic_n faith_n for_o what_o judgement_n can_v be_v more_o rash_a injurious_a and_o contrary_a to_o christian_a charity_n then_o to_o assert_v that_o so_o many_o holy_a and_o learned_a doctor_n as_o have_v be_v and_o be_v confess_v papist_n and_o even_o the_o whole_a visible_a church_n for_o the_o space_n at_o least_o of_o 1000_o year_n can_v either_o ignorant_o mistake_v or_o will_v wilful_o forsake_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o god_n word_n so_o clear_o shine_v in_o scripture_n as_o every_o petty_a protestant_n do_v pretend_v or_o what_o be_v more_o repugnant_a 〈◊〉_d christian_a modesty_n and_o humility_n than_o that_o homely_a doctor_n and_o half_a witted_a wit_n shall_v prefer_v their_o own_o private_a opinion_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n before_o the_o common_a consent_n and_o belief_n of_o 〈◊〉_d father_n of_o the_o church_n the_o definition_n of_o general_a counsel_n the_o tradition_n and_o testimony_n of_o so_o many_o age_n it_o be_v both_o a_o ridiculous_a and_o sad_a spectacle_n to_o see_v how_o every_o student_n of_o the_o university_n that_o have_v learn'●_n to_o construe_v 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d or_o to_o quibble_n or_o scribble_v somewhat_o in_o greek_a english_a or_o latin_a take_v upon_o he_o to_o talk_v of_o religion_n and_o to_o censure_v st._n 〈◊〉_d st._n austin_n st._n christian_a &c._n &c._n and_o contemn_v both_o ancient_a and_o modern_a catholic_n author_n prefer_v before_o the_o whole_a church_n him-self_n and_o his_o po●antick_a tutor_n or_o fellow_n of_o oxford_n and_o cambrige_n college_n nay_o the_o illiterate_a people_n even_o the_o woman_n be_v grow_v to_o that_o height_n of_o spiritual_a pride_n a_o infallible_a 〈◊〉_d of_o heresy_n that_o they_o pity_v our_o popish_a ignorance_n and_o fancy_n they_o can_v 〈◊〉_d with_o the_o text_n of_o their_o english_a bibles_n false_o translate_v and_o fond_o interpret_v the_o great_a roman_n divine_n so_o true_a be_v the_o say_n of_o st._n hierom_n in_o epist._n ad_fw-la paulinum_n scripture_n be_v the_o only_a art_n which_o all_o people_n teach_v before_o they_o have_v learn_v the_o prattle_a woman_n the_o old_a dote_a man_n etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o advers._fw-la lucifer_n bid_v man_n not_o flatter_v them-selve_n with_o quote_v scripture_n to_o confirm_v their_o opinion_n see_v the_o devil_n him-self_n make_v use_v of_o god_n word_n which_o consist_v more_o in_o the_o sense_n then_o in_o the_o letter_n how_o impossible_a be_v it_o to_o govern_v peaceable_o so_o prattle_v and_o presume_v a_o protestant_a multitude_n either_o in_o church_n or_o state_n be_v too_o manifest_a by_o the_o last_o experience_n in_o england_n where_o the_o endeavour_n of_o reduce_v this_o protestant_a arrogancy_n to_o some_o kind_n of_o reason_n be_v the_o occasion_n and_o object_n of_o the_o rebellion_n king_n charles_n i._n and_o his_o council_n for_o attempt_v to_o make_v the_o inferior_n subordinat_a to_o their_o superior_n in_o doctrine_n and_o discipline_n and_o the_o subject_n obedient_a to_o the_o law_n of_o the_o land_n be_v asperse_v as_o papist_n and_o destroy_v as_o enemy_n to_o the_o evangelical_n liberty_n of_o protestancy_n and_o as_o subverter_n of_o the_o fundamental_a principle_n of_o the_o reformation_n popish_a rebellion_n happen_v because_o the_o promotor_n thereof_o fall_v from_o that_o fervour_n of_o their_o faith_n and_o devotion_n which_o they_o ought_v to_o practice_v but_o the_o english_a protestant_a rebellion_n be_v raise_v and_o continue_v by_o the_o most_o devout_a pure_a fervent_a and_o zealous_a sort_n of_o protestant_n in_o persuance_n and_o maintenance_n of_o their_o religion_n other_o rebellion_n be_v common_o unexpected_a chance_n spring_v from_o a_o sudden_a fury_n or_o fear_v of_o desperate_a people_n but_o the_o late_a rebellion_n be_v and_o be_v to_o this_o day_n pretend_v by_o many_o to_o have_v be_v a_o pious_a and_o sober_a proceed_n the_o king_n murder_n only_o except_v of_o the_o prudent_a and_o religious_a man_n of_o the_o nation_n assemble_v in_o parliament_n and_o be_v so_o justifiable_a by_o the_o principle_n of_o protestancy_n that_o he_o must_v be_v think_v not_o only_o a_o wise_a but_o a_o fortunate_a king_n of_o england_n that_o can_v prevent_v or_o suppress_v the_o like_a revolution_n in_o his_o reign_n so_o long_o as_o protestancy_n do_v reign_v with_o he_o the_o reason_n be_v as_o manifest_a as_o the_o experience_n and_o the_o cause_n as_o the_o effect_n for_o if_o a_o commonwealth_n be_v so_o institute_v that_o every_o private_a person_n may_v pretend_v by_o his_o birthright_n or_o privilege_n to_o admit_v of_o no_o other_o judge_n or_o interpreter_n of_o the_o law_n but_o him-self_n or_o at_o least_o may_v lawful_o and_o lega_o appeal_v from_o all_o court_n of_o judicature_n even_o from_o the_o high_a which_o be_v the_o parliament_n to_o his_o own_o private_a judgement_n what_o intolerable_a confusion_n will_v it_o breed_v what_o justice_n subordination_n peace_n propriety_n or_o prosperity_n can_v be_v expect_v in_o such_o a_o government_n the_o same_o law_n and_o authority_n which_o ought_v to_o decide_v all_o difference_n will_v be_v the_o subject_n and_o occasion_n of_o perpetual_a quarrel_n this_o be_v the_o condition_n and_o constitution_n of_o protestant_a church_n and_o state_n every_o private_a person_n be_v a_o supreme_a judge_n of_o religion_n and_o sole_a interpreter_n of_o scripture_n he_o may_v appeal_v both_o from_o sovereign_n and_o bishop_n from_o their_o temporal_a and_o ecclesiastical_a law_n to_o his_o own_o private_a judgement_n or_o spirit_n and_o him-self_n must_v determine_v the_o difference_n and_o conclude_v whether_o the_o decree_n of_o church_n and_o state_n be_v agreeable_a to_o god_n word_n that_o be_v to_o his_o own_o interpretation_n thereof_o which_o common_o be_v bias_v by_o private_a interest_n or_o some_o singular_a fancy_n of_o his_o own_o and_o though_o the_o governor_n and_o clergy_n of_o his_o church_n and_o country_n tell_v he_o he_o ought_v to_o suspend_v his_o judgement_n and_o submit_v the_o same_o to_o 〈◊〉_d parliament_n or_o to_o a_o general_a council_n not_o like_o that_o of_o trent_n but_o to_o one_o compose_v of_o all_o nation_n and_o christian_a congregation_n call_v by_o the_o joint_a authority_n of_o all_o temporal_a prince_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n he_o must_v 〈◊〉_d to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o church_n and_o state_n whereof_o he_o be_v a_o member_n when_o they_o inculcat_fw-la this_o lesson_n unto_o a_o zealous_a protestant's_n 〈…〉_z not_o so_o simple_a as_o to_o believe_v that_o they_o who_o read_v this_o 〈◊〉_d speak_v as_o they_o think_v or_o that_o they_o believe_v any_o such_o general_a council_n be_v possible_a for_o that_o every_o 〈◊〉_d know_v temporal_a prince_n will_v never_o agree_v about_o the_o precedent_n time_n place_n and_o other_o circumstance_n of_o such_o a_o counceil_n and_o though_o they_o shall_v and_o the_o turck_n and_o other_o infidel_n give_v way_n to_o such_o a_o suspicious_a assembly_n of_o christian_n yet_o when_o they_o m●t●_n nothing_o can_v be_v resolve_v ●or_a want_n of_o their_o agreement_n in_o a_o 〈◊〉_d of_o judge_v of_o controversy_n every_o sect_n ●●icking_v to_o it_o be_v own_o principle_n and_o proper_a sense_n of_o scripture_n so_o tha●_n every_o protestant_n understand_v the_o design_n of_o this_o doctrine_n to_o be_v but_o a_o fetch_n of_o their_o own_o clergy_n to_o make_v it-self_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n sol●_n judge_n of_o religion_n contrary_a to_o the_o principle_n and_o privilege_n of_o protestancy_n and_o therefore_o laugh_v at_o the_o folly_n of_o such_o a_o proposal_n and_o pretext_n we_o roman_a catholic_n need_v no_o such_o device_n nor_o delay_n we_o be_v content_a to_o submit_v to_o such_o general_a counsel_n as_o may_v be_v have_v our_o pope_n and_o counsel_n define_v according_a to_o the_o tradition_n and_o sense_n of_o scripture_n of_o the_o true_a church_n our_o censure_n must_v suppose_v know_v cause_n and_o crime_n and_o if_o with_o all_o these_o caution_n the_o pop_n spiritual_a jurisdiction_n be_v think_v to_o be_v so_o dangerous_a to_o the_o sovereignty_n of_o king_n and_o peace_n of_o subject_n least_o forsooth_o it_o may_v be_v indirect_o apply_v to_o temporal_a matter_n that_o all_o protestant_n upon_o that_o score_n renounce_v the_o papal_a authority_n with_o how_o much_o more_o reason_n
1260._o year_n and_o pag._n ●4●_n from_o the_o time_n of_o constantine_n until_o these_o our_o day_n even_o 1260._o year_n the_o pope_n and_o his_o clergy_n have_v possess_v the_o outward_a visible_a church_n of_o christian_n and_o their_o chief_a doctor_n ingenious_o acknowledge_v that_o their_o church_n be_v either_o so_o obscure_a or_o so_o oppress_v that_o notwithstanding_o their_o own_o serious_a examination_n and_o diligent_a search_n into_o all_o history_n both_o sacred_a and_o profane_a they_o can_v not_o find_v in_o the_o space_n of_o at_o least_o 1300._o year_n as_o much_o as_o a_o record_n or_o tradition_n of_o any_o on_o person_n to_o bear_v witness_n that_o their_o faith_n sense_n of_o scripture_n or_o reformation_n be_v preach_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n sebastianus_n francus_n in_o ep_n de_fw-fr abrog_n statutis_fw-la ecclesiast_n say_v statim_fw-la post_fw-la apostolos_fw-la etc._n etc._n present_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n all_o thing_n be_v turne●_n upside_o down_o etc._n etc._n and_o that_o for_o certain_a through_o the_o work_n of_o anti-christ_n the_o external_a church_n together_o with_o the_o faith_n and_o the_o sacrament_n vanish_v away_o present_o after_o the_o apostle_n departure_n and_o that_o for_o these_o 1400._o year_n the_o church_n have_v be_v no_o where_o external_a and_o visible_a peter_n martyr_n so_o much_o commend_v by_o calvin_n and_o send_v for_o by_o cranmer_n to_o help_v to_o frame_v the_o religion_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n pag._n 462._o of_o his_o work_n de_fw-fr caelibatu_fw-la &_o votis_fw-la say_v as_o for_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o father_n because_o our_o adversaire_n the_o papist_n both_o in_o this_o and_o other_o controversy_n be_v accustom_v to_o appeal_v to_o they_o i_o do_v not_o think_v it_o the_o part_n of_o a_o christian_n to_o appeal_v from_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o man_n and_o pag._n 476._o so_o long_o as_o we_o go_v no_o further_o than_o the_o counsel_n and_o father_n we_o shall_v always_o remain_v in_o the_o same_o error_n this_o sophister_n will_v fain_o make_v protestant_n believe_v that_o the_o question_n be_v whether_o the_o father_n sense_n of_o scripture_n ought_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o sense_n of_o the_o protestant_n them-selve_n confess_v that_o both_o counsel_n and_o father_n be_v contrary_a to_o their_o interpretation_n whitaker_n on_o of_o the_o learned_a protestant_n that_o ever_o write_v answer_v duraeus_n and_o acknowledge_v the_o truth_n of_o the_o assertion_n come_v off_o with_o this_o poor_a evasion_n l._n 7._o pag._n 478_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o we_o to_o know_v by_o confer_v the_o popish_a doctrine_n with_o scripture_n that_o they_o do_v not_o agree_v let_v history_n say_v what_o they_o list_v so_o little_a do_v the_o ecclesiastical_a annal_n favour_v protestancy_n that_o never_o any_o point_n thereof_o be_v mention_v without_o mention_v also_o how_o it_o begin_v and_o be_v condemn_v as_o heresy_n now_o let_v protestant_n examine_v our_o roman_a catholic_n witness_n we_o do_v not_o stop_v as_o they_o must_v at_o the_o last_o age_n 1500._o we_o produce_v in_o every_o century_n of_o year_n the_o most_o eminent_a person_n for_o sanctity_n and_o learning_n that_o then_o live_v who_o not_o only_o profess_v our_o faith_n live_v but_o also_o die_v as_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o all_o christendom_n their_o own_o write_n and_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o adversary_n be_v manifest_a whereof_o the_o divine_n of_o magdeburg_n heretofore_o quote_v write_v copious_o in_o their_o century_n these_o father_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o church_n in_o each_o respective_a century_n deliver_v the_o roman_n catholic_n faith_n to_o the_o next_o succeed_v not_o as_o a_o private_a opinion_n of_o their_o own_o but_o as_o the_o public_a pure_a primitive_a apostolic_a say_v which_o they_o have_v receive_v as_o such_o from_o the_o precedent_a age_n confirm_v by_o the_o unanimous_a testimony_n of_o their_o know_a catholic_n immediate_a predecessor_n what_o exception_n or_o objection_n can_v protestant_n pretend_v against_o the_o holy_a and_o learned_a father_n so_o impartial_a judge_n and_o witness_n they_o can_v not_o be_v ignorant_a of_o what_o be_v the_o public_a and_o universal_a faith_n or_o church_n in_o their_o time_n and_o they_o be_v man_n of_o so_o great_a integrity_n that_o they_o will_v not_o for_o any_o temporal_a interest_n conceal_v the_o truth_n in_o a_o matter_n whereof_o depend_v eternity_n they_o be_v not_o angry_a say_v s._n augustin_n dispute_v against_o the_o pelagian_n advers._fw-la julian_n l._n 2._o prope_fw-la finem_fw-la &_o lib._n 3._o c._n 17._o &_o lib._n 4._o c._n 12._o neither_o at_o you_o or_o we_o what_o they_o have_v find_v in_o the_o church_n that_o they_o have_v hold_v they_o have_v teach_v what_o they_o have_v learn_v what_o they_o have_v receive_v from_o their_o forefather_n they_o have_v deliver_v to_o posterity_n the_o most_o learned_a protestant_n decline_v the_o father_n judgement_n and_o testimony_n for_o no_o other_o reason_n but_o because_o they_o find_v they_o to_o be_v roman_a catholic_n in_o their_o write_n so_o that_o the_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o they_o by_o for_o we_o but_o whether_o their_o testimony_n for_o we_o aver_v that_o the_o roman_n catholic_n sense_n of_o scripture_n be_v the_o same_o which_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n deliver_v aught_o to_o be_v prefer_v before_o the_o contrary_a testimony_n of_o luther_n calvin_n cranmer_n or_o of_o the_o other_o convocation_n and_o parliament_n of_o england_n of_o edward_n 6._o and_o queen_n elizabeth_z who_o prove_v not_o their_o reform_a sense_n of_o scripture_n by_o ancient_a tradition_n but_o by_o a_o new_a arbitrary_a interpretation_n of_o scripture_n and_o in_o what_o court_n of_o judicature_n will_v such_o a_o uncertain_a guess_n pass_v for_o a_o legal_a proof_n whereas_o tradition_n be_v the_o only_a evidence_n whereby_o the_o great_a civil_a controversy_n even_o of_o regal_a succession_n and_o title_n be_v decide_v in_o the_o protestant_n court_n therefore_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v exclude_v as_o superfluous_a or_o superstitious_a from_o the_o church_n subset_fw-la iii_o as_o to_o their_o exception_n that_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n be_v but_o a_o part_n rome_n and_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v judge_n of_o all_o other_o christian_n we_o answer_v that_o not_o by_o all_o christian_n but_o by_o on_o part_n be_v all_o controversy_n in_o the_o church_n decide_v since_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o the_o other_o part_n which_o do_v not_o submit_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o that_o one_o in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o discipline_n be_v censure_v heretic_n that_o the_o judgement_n and_o censure_n in_o all_o age_n be_v issue_v but_o by_o on_o part_n and_o this_o the_o roman_n catholic_n party_n that_o live_v in_o communion_n with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o counsel_n that_o acknowledge_v his_o jurisdiction_n we_o prove_v by_o the_o confess_a example_n of_o every_o century_n in_o the_o first_o the_o controversy_n of_o the_o legal_a ceremony_n be_v determine_v by_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o apostle_n in_o a_o council_n wherein_o s._n peter_n preside_v act._n 15._o in_o the_o second_o century_n the_o christian_n be_v divide_v about_o celebrate_v e'aster_n the_o controversy_n be_v decide_v by_o s._n victor_n bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o s._n peter_n successor_n and_o because_o the_o church_n of_o asia_n will_v not_o conform_v themselves_o to_o his_o sentence_n he_o excommunicate_v they_o euseb._n l._n 5._o hist._n c._n 23._o &_o 24._o and_o though_o s._n irenaeus_n approve_v not_o of_o s._n victor_n severity_n yet_o he_o never_o question_v his_o jurisdiction_n or_o supremacy_n or_o the_o legality_n of_o his_o censure_n and_o because_o some_o christian_n persist_v obstinate_o in_o not_o conform_v to_o the_o pop_n decree_n of_o celebrate_v easter_n they_o be_v for_o that_o obstinacy_n declare_v heretic_n and_o as_o such_o number_v in_o catalogue_n by_o s._n epiphanius_n haeres_fw-la 50._o s._n augustin_n haeres_fw-la 26._o and_o by_o tertullian_n the_o prescript_n in_o fine_a and_o call_v quartodecimans_a in_o the_o three_o century_n by_o the_o pope_n cornelius_n and_o his_o roman_a council_n the_o novatian_a heresy_n be_v condemn_v euseb._n ex_fw-la version_n rufini_n lib._n 6._o histor_n cap._n 33._o and_o though_o there_o be_v not_o as_o many_o bishop_n in_o that_o roman_a council_n as_o at_o trent_n yet_o the_o whole_a church_n think_v the_o authority_n sufficient_a and_o legal_a to_o declare_v the_o novatian_o heretic_n the_o same_o pope_n and_o stephen_n his_o successor_n condemn_v such_o christian_n as_o thought_n and_o teach_v that_o they_o who_o have_v be_v baptize_v by_o heretic_n aught_o to_o be_v rebaptise_v in_o the_o forth_o century_n the_o arian_n heresy_n be_v condemn_v by_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a wherein_o be_v but_o 318._o bishop_n who_o testimony_n be_v think_v sufficient_a and_o legal_a against_o a_o far_o great_a
number_n of_o arius_n his_o faction_n because_o the_o councell_n testimony_n be_v confirm_v by_o a_o tradition_n and_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o st._n silvester_n bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o legate_n preside_v in_o that_o assembly·_n in_o the_o same_o century_n be_v condemn_v the_o heresy_n of_o macedonius_n against_o the_o holy_a ghost_n by_o a_o council_n in_o constantinople_n confirm_v by_o the_o authority_n of_o st._n damasus_n bishop_n of_o rome_n photius_n in_o lib._n de_fw-fr septem_fw-la synodis_fw-la in_o the_o five_o century_n be_v condemn_v the_o heresy_n of_o nestorius_n in_o the_o ephesin_n council_n wherein_o preside_v cyrillus_n in_o the_o name_n of_o pope_n celestin._n evagrius_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 4._o and_o a_o little_a after_o be_v condemn_v the_o heresy_n of_o eutiche_n in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n wherein_o also_o preside_v the_o legate_n of_o pope_n leo._n evagrius_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 4._o and_o the_o whole_a council_n petition_v to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o his_o confirmation_n of_o their_o acts._n tom_n 2._o council_n &_o breviarium_fw-la liberati_n in_o the_o same_o five_o age_n be_v condemn_v the_o heresy_n of_o the_o pelagian_n by_o authority_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o pelagian_a heresy_n say_v st._n austin_n lib._n 2._o retract_v c._n 50._o with_o its_o author_n be_v convict_v and_o condemn_v by_o the_o roman_a bishop_n jnnocent_a and_o zozimus_n with_o concurrence_n or_o at_o the_o instance_n of_o the_o counsel_n of_o africa_n and_o prosper_v in_o chronico_fw-la a_o 420._o a_o council_n be_v hold_v at_o carthage_n of_o 217._o bishop_n the_o synodal_n decree_n be_v send_v to_o pope_n zozimus_n which_o be_v approve_v the_o pelagian_a heresy_n be_v condemn_v in_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o the_o six_o century_n many_o heresy_n be_v condemn_v in_o the_o 5._o synod_n in_o the_o 7._o century_n and_o six_o synod_n be_v condemn_v the_o monothelit_n wherein_o preside_v the_o pop_n legate_n though_o the_o emperor_n be_v present_a and_o subscribe_v but_o after_o all_o the_o bishop_n not_o as_o a_o judge_n but_o as_o on_o who_o consent_v and_o submit_v to_o their_o judgement_n in_o the_o 8._o century_n and_o 7._o synod_n of_o 350._o bishop_n be_v declare_v and_o condemn_v as_o heretic_n they_o who_o oppose_v the_o worship_n of_o jmage_n wherein_o also_o preside_v the_o pop_n legate_n whereof_o photius_n say_v this_o sacred_a and_o great_a council_n condemn_v a_o barbarous_a heresy_n new_o invent_v by_o wicked_a and_o execrable_a man_n etc._n etc._n for_o they_o do_v term_v the_o adorable_a image_n of_o christ_n whereby_o erroneous_a idolatry_n be_v exclude_v a_o idol_n etc._n etc._n in_o the_o 9_o century_n and_o 8._o synod_n many_o controversy_n be_v decide_v and_o the_o pop_n legate_n preside_v the_o emperor_n be_v present_a and_o subscribe_v but_o after_o the_o legate_n and_o patriarch_n and_o plain_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o judgement_n of_o religious_a controversy_n apertain_v not_o to_o he_o and_o that_o by_o subscribe_v he_o only_o testify_v his_o consent_n in_o the_o 10._o century_n we_o read_v of_o no_o heresy_n but_o of_o the_o greek_n schism_n in_o the_o 11._o century_n pope_n leo_n the_o 9_o in_o a_o council_n at_o vercelli_n and_o pope_n nicolas_n 2._o in_o a_o council_n at_o rome_n of_o 113._o bishop_n condemn_v the_o heresy_n of_o berengarius_fw-la against_o the_o real_a presence_n and_o transubstantiation_n lanfrancus_fw-la lib._n 1._o contra_fw-la bereng_n this_o berengarius_fw-la be_v no_o great_a scholar_n as_o archbishop_n guido_n say_v but_o very_o ambitious_a and_o think_v to_o acquire_v fame_n by_o his_o new_a opinion_n after_o twice_o recant_v and_o return_v to_o his_o heresy_n in_o his_o last_o sickness_n perceive_v his_o end_n to_o draw_v near_o john_n gerson_n relate_v these_o his_o last_o word_n my_o god_n thou_o will_v this_o day_n appear_v to_o my_o salvation_n as_o i_o hope_v for_o my_o repentance_n or_o to_o my_o damnation_n as_o i_o fear_v for_o deceive_v with_o perverse_n doctrine_n other_o who_o afterward_o i_o can_v not_o reduce_v to_o the_o truth_n of_o thy_o sacrament_n in_o the_o 12._o century_n jnnocent_a the_o second_o bishop_n of_o rome_n condemn_v the_o heresy_n of_o peter_n abaylard_n see_v s._n bernard_n epist_n 194._o and_o pope_n eugenius_n 3._o condemn_v the_o error_n of_o gilbert_n porretanus_n in_o the_o council_n of_o rheims_n see_v s._n bern._n serm_n 80._o in_o cantica_fw-la in_o the_o 13._o century_n pope_n innocent_a 3._o condemn_v the_o error_n of_o joachim_n the_o abbot_n in_o the_o lateran_n council_n and_o afterward_o pope_n gregory_n 10._o in_o the_o general_n council_n of_o lion_n condemn_v the_o greek_n error_n in_o the_o 14._o century_n pope_n clement_n 5._o condemn_a the_o error_n of_o the_o begard_n in_o the_o council_n of_o vienna_n in_o the_o 15._o century_n the_o error_n of_o john_n hus_n and_o john_n whicliff_n be_v condemn_v in_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n by_o pope_n martin_n 5._o and_o the_o error_n of_o the_o greek_n in_o the_o council_n of_o florence_n by_o pope_n eugenius_n 4._o now_o what_o reason_n can_v protestant_n give_v why_o pius_n 4._o bishop_n of_o rome_n and_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n though_o of_o his_o call_n and_o party_n may_v not_o condemn_v the_o opinion_n of_o protestant_n as_o lawful_o and_o lega_o as_o his_o predecessor_n have_v do_v in_o every_o age_n the_o like_a opinion_n of_o other_o reformer_n both_o condemner_n and_o condemn_a be_v christian_n for_o heretic_n must_v be_v baptize_v otherwise_o they_o be_v rather_o pagan_n than_o heretic_n the_o condemn_a christian_n be_v often_o patriarch_n and_o bishop_n sometime_o as_o many_o as_o the_o condemner_n and_o yet_o neither_o can_v their_o plea_n of_o christianity_n or_o pretence_n of_o scripture_n or_o parity_n in_o dignity_n or_o equality_n in_o number_n exempt_v they_o from_o the_o validity_n and_o legality_n of_o the_o roman_a censure_n unto_o which_o if_o they_o do_v not_o submit_v all_o the_o catholic_n world_n hold_v they_o for_o obstinate_a heretic_n therefore_o we_o may_v not_o without_o contradict_v both_o reason_n and_o authority_n the_o common_a sense_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o general_a custom_n of_o christian_a antiquity_n allow_v the_o exception_n which_o protestant_n plead_v against_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o council_n of_o his_o bishop_n that_o forsooth_o they_o be_v but_o a_o part_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o therefore_o as_o party_n concern_v incompetent_a judge_n and_o witness_n in_o controversy_n of_o christian_a religion_n we_o have_v see_v the_o weakness_n and_o ill_a success_n of_o the_o protestant_n design_n in_o this_o distinction_n of_o fundamental_a and_o not_o fundamental_a article_n of_o faith_n and_o how_o they_o be_v reject_v as_o heretic_n by_o the_o greeck_n schismatic_n and_o other_o sectary_n who_o they_o court_v to_o be_v admit_v as_o a_o part_n of_o their_o church_n we_o have_v also_o prove_v the_o unreasonableness_n of_o their_o exception_n against_o the_o testimony_n and_o censure_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n and_o counsel_n now_o we_o will_v view_v the_o distinction_n itself_o and_o prove_v that_o by_o the_o protestant_n doctrine_n of_o fundamental_n the_o very_a foundation_n of_o christian_a religion_n be_v destroy_v and_o nothing_o believe_v with_o divine_a faith_n sect_n xii_o god_n veracity_n be_v deny_v by_o protestancy_n and_o by_o the_o prelatic_a distinction_n and_o doctrine_n of_o fundamental_a and_o not_o fundamental_a article_n of_o faith_n the_o foundation_n of_o christian_a religion_n be_v the_o belief_n of_o god_n veracity_n the_o belief_n of_o god_n veracity_n consist_v not_o only_o in_o acknowledge_v that_o whatsoever_o god_n say_v be_v true_a that_o be_v never_o deny_v by_o any_o heretic_n and_o yet_o all_o heretic_n deny_v his_o veracity_n but_o consist_v in_o acknowledge_v also_o that_o whatsoever_o doctrine_n be_v sufficient_o propose_v as_o speak_v or_o reveal_v by_o god_n be_v infallible_o true_a and_o that_o god_n be_v the_o author_n of_o the_o same_o to_o avoid_v all_o dispute_n concern_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o proposal_n of_o god_n revelation_n we_o will_v condescend_v so_o far_o to_o our_o protestant_n adversary_n as_o to_o make_v themselves_o judges_n thereof_o provide_v they_o will_v be_v so_o religious_a and_o rational_a as_o to_o grant_v that_o to_o divine_a majesty_n ought_v not_o be_v deny_v a_o prerogative_n which_o by_o the_o dictamen_fw-la of_o reason_n the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o the_o practice_n of_o themselves_o and_o of_o all_o nation_n be_v due_a and_o exhibit_v to_o majesty_n and_o magistracy_n and_o to_o all_o temporal_a sovereign_n viz._n to_o speak_v and_o declare_v their_o mind_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o other_o their_o inferior_a officer_n and_o minister_n wherefore_o as_o subject_n do_v judge_v it_o a_o sufficient_a proposal_n of_o the_o regal_a authority_n and_o confess_v them-selve_n be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v that_o their_o sovereign_n speak_v and_o command_v
doctor_n harding_n have_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o testimony_n of_o leontius_n bishop_n of_o cyprus_n that_o john_n the_o holy_a patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n say_v mass_n and_o receive_v alone_o jewel_n and_o his_o comrade_n answer_v thus_o a_o straight_a case_n for_o mr._n harding_n to_o run_v to_o alexandria_n a_o thousand_o mile_n beyond_o all_o christendom_n so_o sack_v his_o mass._n as_o if_o at_o that_o time_n alexandria_n be_v not_o almost_o in_o the_o midst_n of_o christendom_n or_o though_o it_o have_v be_v in_o the_o midst_n of_o infidel_n as_o if_o that_o can_v be_v a_o argument_n of_o any_o force_n against_o the_o truth_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n which_o be_v no_o less_o pure_a when_o it_o be_v preach_v and_o practise_v among_o jdolater_n then_o at_o this_o present_a among_o christian_n doctor_n stapleton_n confute_v some_o objection_n of_o the_o english_a apology_n against_o harding_n quote_v both_o his_o word_n and_o jewel_n be_v thus_o st._n andrew_n the_o apostle_n say_v mr._n harding_n touch_v the_o substance_n of_o the_o mass_n worship_v god_n every_o day_n with_o the_o same_o service_n as_o priest_n now_o do_v in_o celebrate_v the_o external_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o church_n mr._n jewel_n thus_o answer_v the_o 6._o untruth_n s._n andrew_n say_v the_o communion_n not_o the_o mass._n mr._n harding_n say_v further_o they_o shall_v find_v the_o same_o most_o plain_o treat_v of_o and_o a_o form_n of_o mass_n much_o agreeable_a to_o that_o which_o be_v use_v in_o these_o day_n set_v forth_o by_o st._n dyonise_n scholar_n to_o st._n paul_n mr._n jewel_n the_o nine_o untruth_n it_o be_v the_o very_a form_n of_o the_o communion_n and_o nothing_o like_o the_o private_a mass._n mr._n harding_n again_o i_o refer_v they_o instead_o of_o many_o to_o the_o two_o father_n basil_n and_o chrysostom_n who_o mass_n be_v lest_o to_o posterity_n in_o these_o time_n mr._n jewel_n the_o 11._o untruth_n they_o contain_v the_o very_a order_n of_o the_o communion_n mr._n harding_n yet_o further_o among_o all_o other_o father_n cyrillus_n hierosolimitanus_n be_v not_o to_o be_v pass_v over_o light_o who_o at_o large_a expound_v the_o whole_a mass_n use_v in_o jerusalem_n in_o his_o time_n the_o same_o which_o now_o we_o find_v in_o old_a st._n clement_n long_o before_o he_o and_o other_o mr._n jewel_n the_o 12._o untruth_n it_o be_v the_o very_a express_a order_n of_o the_o communion_n and_o after_o this_o ●●●●ulous_a manner_n of_o contradict_v without_o confute_v doctor_n harding_n particular_a instance_n jewel_n exclaim_v o_o mr._n harding_n be_v it_o not_o possible_a your_o religion_n 33._o may_v stand_v without_o lie_n so_o many_o untruth_n in_o so_o little_a room_n without_o the_o shame_n of_o the_o world_n without_o fear_n of_o god_n etc._n etc._n his_o fond_a fraud_n be_v detect_v and_o his_o untruth_n return_v upon_o him-self_n by_o d._n r_o stapleton_n who_o tell_v bishop_n jewel_n that_o in_o the_o catholic_n sense_n the_o mass_n and_o communion_n be_v the_o self_n same_o thing_n in_o substance_n the_o communion_n be_v a_o principal_a part_n of_o the_o mass_n without_o which_o there_o be_v no_o sacrificie_fw-la for_o which_o cause_n the_o priest_n always_o communicate_v either_o alone_a or_o with_o other_o when_o company_n do_v offer_v itself_o or_o be_v prepare_v for_o it_o and_o consequent_o it_o be_v a_o fraud_n say_v he_o m._n r_o jewel_n to_o put_v a_o contradiction_n between_o communion_n and_o private_a mass_n as_o though_o the_o one_o can_v not_o stand_v with_o the_o other_o say_v that_o the_o forename_a father_n which_o be_v cite_v to_o have_v say_v mass_n say_v the_o communion_n and_o no_o mass_n where_o as_o we_o say_v m._n r_o sta●●●ton_n hold_v that_o they_o do_v both_o and_o say_v the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o that_o be_v they_o celebrate_v the_o daily_a sacrificie_fw-la and_o therewithal_o do_v communicate_v but_o if_o m._n r_o jewel_n mean_v of_o the_o english_a communion_n where_o in_o no_o external_a sacrifice_n nor_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n be_v acknowledge_v or_o believe_v then_o prove_v d._n r_o stapleton_n that_o the_o foresay_a father_n can_v possible_o be_v understand_v to_o speak_v of_o that_o communion_n for_o that_o in_o their_o say_a liturgy_n they_o do_v make_v express_a mention_n of_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n flesh_n therein_o and_o of_o the_o offer_v up_o as_o the_o express_a word_n of_o s._n andrew_n be_v of_o the_o sacred_a body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n our_o saviour_n in_o sacrifice_n unto_o god_n his_o father_n and_o moreover_o in_o st._n dionise_v his_o mass_n there_o be_v express_a mention_n of_o oblation_n and_o consecration_n of_o the_o mystery_n of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a of_o altar_n cense_v achaiae_n communion_n and_o memory_n of_o saint_n all_o which_o thing_n be_v not_o in_o the_o english_a liturgy_n or_o communion_n and_o much_o more_o he_o show_v the_o same_o in_o the_o mass_n or_o liturgy_n of_o st._n basil_n and_o st._n chrysostom_n where_o after_o the_o oblation_n make_v of_o the_o sacrifice_n commemoration_n be_v make_v also_o of_o the_o bless_a saint_n in_o heaven_n and_o namely_o of_o our_o b._n lady_n and_o st._n john_n baptist_n and_o of_o the_o saint_n of_o the_o day_n and_o of_o prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a which_o last_o clause_n st._n cyrill_n do_v explicat_fw-la more_o particular_o say_v when_o we_o offer_v up_o this_o sacrifice_n after_o the_o oblation_n we_o make_v mention_n of_o those_o which_o have_v depart_v this_o life_n before_o we_o and_o first_o of_o the_o patriarch_n prophet_n apostle_n and_o martyr_n that_o by_o their_o prayer_n and_o intercession_n almighty_a god_n may_v receive_v our_o prayer_n and_o then_o we_o pray_v for_o the_o holy_a father_n and_o bishop_n depart_v and_o last_o we_o pray_v for_o all_o man_n which_o among_o we_o have_v decease_v believe_v it_o to_o be_v a_o great_a relief_n of_o soul_n for_o who_o the_o intercession_n of_o that_o holy_a and_o dreadful_a sacrifice_n which_o be_v lay_v upon_o the_o altar_n be_v offer_v these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o st._n cyrill_n whereupon_o mr._n stapleton_n demand_v be_v this_o the_o express_a order_n of_o your_o communion_n here_o you_o see_v say_v he_o be_v oblation_n sacrifice_n altar_n prayer_n to_o saint_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o be_v all_o this_o don_n in_o your_o english_a communion_n and_o now_o i_o hope_v we_o may_v with_o more_o reason_n exclaim_v against_o jewel_n and_o the_o church_n of_o england_n then_o they_o do_v against_o 〈◊〉_d be_v it_o not_o possible_a your_o religion_n may_v stand_v without_o l●es_n subsect_v vi_o prelatic_a falsification_n and_o corruption_n of_o scripture_n to_o make_v the_o pope_n antichrist_n and_o succession_n of_o bishop_n a_o mark_n of_o the_o beast_n one_o of_o the_o thing_n which_o most_o trouble_a bishop_n jewel_n and_o the_o first_o protestant_n prelate_n of_o queen_n elizabeth_n be_v there_o notorious_a want_n of_o episcopal_a character_n and_o succession_n derive_v from_o the_o apostle_n all_o the_o true_a bishop_n of_o england_n refuse_v to_o ordain_v they_o after_o that_o them-selve_n have_v be_v violent_o deprive_v of_o their_o sea_n by_o the_o queen_n command_n 1._o for_o not_o conform_v to_o she_o she_o supremacy_n and_o new_a doctrine_n mr._n jewel_n therefore_o and_o his_o comrade_n observe_v how_o much_o their_o cause_n be_v prejudice_v by_o this_o want_n of_o succession_n publish_v and_o preach_v many_o thing_n to_o discredit_v the_o same_o and_o to_o that_o purpose_n in_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o apology_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n th●●_n write_v thus_o by_o succession_n christ_n say_v that_o desolation_n shall_v 〈…〉_z the_o holy_a place_n 132._o and_o antichrist_n shall_v press_v into_o the_o room_n 〈…〉_z and_o for_o proof_n they_o note_v in_o the_o margin_n mat._n 24._o and_o in_o the_o same_o defence_n pag._n 127._o they_o say_v of_o succession_n st._n paul_n say_v to_o the_o faithful_a at_o ephesus_n i_o know_v that_o after_o my_o departure_n hence_o raven_a wolf_n shall_v enter_v and_o succeed_v i_o and_o 〈◊〉_d of_o yourselves_o there_o shall_v by_o succession_n spring_v up_o man_n speak_v perverse_o whereas_o st._n paul_n have_v never_o a_o word_n of_o succession_n 〈◊〉_d succeed_a neither_o be_v there_o any_o mention_n of_o succession_n in_o matthew_n 24._o but_o the_o quite_o contrary_a be_v evident_a by_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o thing_n itself_o for_o that_o antichrist_n enter_v by_o violence_n shall_v 〈◊〉_d dissolve_v all_o lawful_a succession_n of_o priest_n and_o bishop_n continue_v from_o the_o apostle_n time_n to_o his_o time_n then_o enter_v himself_o by_o succession_n which_o point_n seem_v to_o have_v be_v foretell_v by_o st._n paul_n profane_a to_o the_o thessalonian_n 3._o when_o he_o say_v that_o except_o defection_n or_o apostasy_n go_v before_o which_o be_v a_o open_a breach_n from_o orderly_a succession_n and_o
〈…〉_z who_o run_v their_o 〈◊〉_d way_n etc._n etc._n but_o true_o i_o 〈◊〉_d no_o reason_n why_o they_o shall_v jud●●_n so_o rash_o of_o roman_a catholic_n 〈…〉_z to_o persuade_v the_o king_n and_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o we_o be_v so_o impious_a and_o envious_a as_o to_o conceal_v from_o the_o people_n the_o light_n of_o the_o gospel_n see_v we_o stick_v to_o the_o old_a letter_n and_o sense_n of_o scripture_n without_o alter_v the_o text_n or_o reject_v any_o part_n thereof_o or_o devise_v new_a interpretation_n and_o we_o be_v daily_o employ_v not_o only_o in_o preach_v and_o explain_v god_n word_n in_o europe_n but_o forsake_v our_o own_o country_n and_o convenience_n and_o travel_v with_o great_a difficulty_n and_o danger_n both_o by_o sea_n and_o land_n to_o asia_n africa_n america_n and_o the_o antipode_n with_o no_o other_o possible_a design_n but_o to_o publish_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o enlighten_v the_o nation_n of_o gentill●_n who_o be_v in_o 〈…〉_z ignorance_n and_o as_o for_o their_o self-conceited_a presbit●●ian_n 〈…〉_z brethren_n who_o run_n their_o own_a way_n in_o translate_n and_o interpret_n scripture_n we_o do_v not_o excuse_v they_o but_o only_o say_v that_o we_o see_v no_o reason_n why_o prelaticks_n shall_v 〈…〉_z for_o a_o fault_n whereof_o themselves_o be_v no_o less_o guilty_a do_v not_o prelaticks_n run_v their_o own_o way_n as_o well_o as_o those_o other_o sectary_n in_o translate_n the_o bible_n do_v they_o stick_v to_o either_o the_o greek_a latin_a or_o hebrew_n text_n do_v they_o not_o leap_v from_o one_o language_n and_o copy_n to_o a_o other_o accept_v and_o reject_v what_o they_o please_v do_v they_o not_o fancy_v a_o sense_n of_o their_o own_o every_o jot_n as_o contrary_a to_o that_o of_o the_o catholic_n and_o ancient_a church_n as_o that_o of_o their_o brethren_n the_o presbiterian_o and_o other_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v and_o yet_o they_o be_v neither_o more_o learned_a nor_o more_o skilful_a in_o tongue_n nor_o more_o godly_a than_o those_o they_o so_o much_o contemn_v and_o blame_v but_o to_o the_o end_n every_o christian_a may_n more_o clear_o discern_v 〈◊〉_d cheat_n and_o divert_v himself_o with_o some_o variety_n in_o the_o method_n of_o this_o tedious_a but_o convince_a argument_n i_o will_v give_v 〈◊〉_d a_o brief_a relation_n of_o a_o remarkable_a passage_n much_o to_o the_o 〈◊〉_d purpose_n which_o happen_v in_o the_o begin_n of_o king_n james_n 〈◊〉_d reign_n by_o which_o he_o may_v in_o one_o man_n case_n see_v the_o 〈◊〉_d and_o sincerity_n of_o all_o the_o protestant_n prelatic_a church_n and_o 〈◊〉_d in_o king_n james_n his_o time_n and_o judge_n what_o satisfaction_n 〈◊〉_d may_v have_v in_o this_o world_n or_o whether_o they_o may_v expect_v 〈◊〉_d in_o the_o next_o by_o rely_v upon_o the_o authority_n and_o 〈◊〉_d of_o the_o prelatic_a protestant_a church_n of_o england_n subsect_v ii_o of_o deane_n vvalsingham_n search_n into_o matter_n of_o religion_n before_o his_o change_n to_o the_o catholic_n how_o he_o repair_v for_o a_o resolution_n of_o his_o doube_n to_o king_n james_n as_o to_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n who_o remit_v he_o to_o the_o lord_n of_o canterbury_n and_o he_o to_o other_o man_n and_o how_o after_o find_v no_o satisfaction_n he_o betake_v himself_o to_o the_o read_n of_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n author_n for_o discern_v on_o what_o side_n be_v the_o true_a or_o false_a deal_v i_o will_v reduce_v into_o as_o narrow_a a_o compass_n as_o i_o can_v deane_n walsingham_n relation_n which_o he_o dedicate_v to_o k._n james_n conclude_v his_o epistle_n with_o these_o word_n most_o humble_o on_o my_o knee_n i_o beseech_v your_o royal_a majesty_n to_o pardon_v i_o this_o 〈◊〉_d resolution_n whereunto_o i_o protest_v upon_o my_o soul_n and_o conscience_n that_o no_o earthly_a motive_n draw_v i_o but_o only_o my_o love_n and_o obedience_n 〈◊〉_d to_o he_o that_o be_v king_n of_o all_o king_n etc._n etc._n that_o 〈…〉_z pag._n 〈…〉_z as_o you_o have_v see_v to_o change_v my_o judgement_n and_o yield_v to_o the_o manifest_a evidence_n of_o truth_n which_o i_o find_v to_o be_v on_o the_o catholic_n side_n and_o nothing_o 〈…〉_z shift●_n and_o deceit_n on_o the_o contrary_n this_o 〈◊〉_d speak_v here_o good_a 〈◊〉_d as_o in_o the_o sight_n of_o almighty_a god_n and_o as_o in_o truth_n of_o conscience_n i_o have_v find_v and_o no_o way_n out_o of_o passion_n or_o evil_a affection_n or_o worldly_a respect_n in_o which_o every_o man_n will_v easy_o see_v how_o much_o i_o prejudice_v myself_o by_o this_o new_a course_n take_v but_o that_o both_o reason_n and_o religion_n prudence_n and_o all_o true_a piety_n do_v ●●●quire_v that_o the_o everlasting_a salvation_n of_o our_o soul_n shall_v be_v prefer_v before_o all_o other_o human_a respect_n whatsoever_o which_o be_v the_o true_a and_o sincere_a cause_n of_o this_o my_o resolution_n and_o this_o i_o desire_v thou_o good_a christian_a reader_n to_o believe_v and_o assure_v thyself_o to_o be_v most_o true_a as_o a●_n the_o last_o day_n when_o we_o shall_v all_o appear_v before_o the_o tribunal_n of_o 〈◊〉_d saviour_n and_o all_o heart_n be_v make_v know_v will_v evident_o appear_v in_o his_o preface_n to_o the_o reader_n he_o give_v a_o account_n of_o his_o protestant_a education_n and_o religion_n wherein_o 〈◊〉_d be_v so_o zealous_a that_o he_o take_v all_o occasion_n to_o deal_v with_o other_o either_o for_o their_o confirmation_n or_o gain_v to_o 〈◊〉_d and_o to_o this_o effect_n be_v wont_a to_o send_v book_n of_o that_o profession_n to_o any_o that_o will_v read_v they_o by_o which_o occasion_n it_o fall_v out_o that_o one_o of_o his_o ac●quaintance_n that_o seem_v backward_o in_o the_o acceptance_n of_o a_o book_n be_v content_a to_o receive_v it_o from_o he_o upon_o condition_n say_v he_o that_o i_o shall_v promise_v he_o to_o read_v a_o other_o book_n he_o will_v lend_v i_o whereof_o i_o accept_v this_o book_n be_v inittule_v a_o defence_n of_o the_o censure_n give_v upon_o two_o book_n of_o william_n chark_n and_o meredith_n hanmer_n minister_n which_o book_n i_o little_o esteem_v at_o that_o time_n think_v it_o shall_v serve_v i_o for_o some_o disport_n especial_o for_o gather_v out_o some_o absurdity_n against_o papist_n wherewith_o i_o do_v imagine_v all_o their_o book_n to_o be_v abundant_o stuff_v but_o find_v whersoever_o i_o light_v certain_a passage_n which_o i_o can_v 〈◊〉_d well_o digest_v and_o many_o proof_n allege_v whereunto_o i_o can_v 〈◊〉_d answer_n i_o cast_v ●t_a of●en_o aside_o and_o then_o take_v it_o in_o hand_n again_o 〈◊〉_d ●oon_o after_o i_o feel_v myself_o so_o strange_o trouble_v and_o turmoil_v in_o judgement_n and_o conscience_n upon_o the_o read_n thereof_o 〈◊〉_d my_o soul_n have_v take_v pill_n indeed_o and_o can_v not_o bear_v 〈…〉_z i_o confer_v divers_a of_o my_o difficulty_n with_o 〈◊〉_d ●●nisters_n without_o specify_v that_o i_o have_v they_o out_o of_o such_o 〈◊〉_d but_o they_o can_v give_v i_o very_o little_a satisfaction_n or_o 〈◊〉_d at_o all_o whereupon_o i_o make_v divers_a journey_n to_o london_n 〈…〉_z to_o see_v book_n of_o sundry_a sort_n as_o also_o to_o confer_v with_o 〈◊〉_d of_o my_o friend_n and_o have_v weary_v myself_o in_o this_o sort_n 〈◊〉_d the_o space_n of_o divers_a mo●thes_n at_o last_o i_o betake_v myself_o to_o a_o ●ore_o strange_a resolution_n but_o yet_o such_o as_o then_o seem_v to_o 〈◊〉_d most_o necessary_a for_o appease_v of_o my_o mind_n and_o this_o be_v 〈◊〉_d so_o much_o as_o i_o have_v take_v two_o or_o three_o several_a time_n the_o oath_n 〈◊〉_d supremacy_n first_o to_o the_o queen_n and_o afterward_o to_o his_o majesty_n that_o now_o reign_v i_o 〈◊〉_d persuade_v myself_o that_o my_o best_a comfort_n of_o conscience_n will_v come_v from_o the_o superior_a power_n but_o especial_o from_o his_o learned_a majesty_n who_o govern_v the_o crown_n as_o from_o god_n lieutenant_n and_o substitute_n in_o all_o cause_n and_o affair_n whatsoever_o wherefore_o after_o much_o deliberation_n not_o dare_v to_o confer_v ●ith_o any_o papist_n or_o almost_o to_o entertain_v any_o good_a thought_n 〈◊〉_d they_o or_o of_o their_o religion_n i_o determine_v with_o myself_o to_o ●ake_v a_o short_a memorial_n unto_o his_o say_a majesty_n and_o to_o deliver_v he_o the_o sum_n of_o my_o affliction_n and_o doubt_n together_o with_o the_o ●●ok_n itself_o which_o have_v be_v the_o cause_n thereof_o and_o to_o entreat_v he_o by_o his_o supreme_a authority_n to_o give_v order_n for_o my_o sound_a satisfaction_n therein_o and_o so_o bind_v up_o the_o old_a book_n in_o the_o comely_a manner_n i_o can_v i_o get_v i_o to_o london_n and_o thence_o to_o greenwich_n and_o there_o after_o many_o difficulty_n of_o audience_n i_o exhibit_v the_o same_o together_o with_o my_o memorial_n both_o tie_v and_o conjoin_v in_o one_o
mr._n walsingham_n nothing_o but_o a_o colerick_a jnvective_n against_o the_o author_n of_o the_o defence_n tell_v he_o first_o and_o face_v he_o down_o that_o the_o cause_n why_o there_o be_v no_o public_a disputation_n be_v in_o he_o and_o his_o fellow_n as_o be_v afraid_a to_o come_v to_o that_o trial_n which_o kind_n of_o answer_n content_v i_o not_o for_o that_o i_o expect_v he_o will_v have_v say_v that_o disputation_n shall_v be_v procure_v and_o that_o he_o and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o our_o clergy_n will_v join_v in_o that_o suit_n to_o her_o majesty_n that_o then_o be_v second_o to_o all_o the_o way_n set_v down_o by_o the_o defence_n for_o try_v of_o a_o catholic_n and_o heretical_a spirit_n he_o say_v only_o that_o he_o and_o he_o will_v be_v try_v by_o scripture_n whereas_o the_o controversy_n will_v be_v about_o the_o sense_n and_o jnterpretation_n of_o scripture_n three_o to_o that_o of_o luther_n zuinglius_fw-la calvin_n beza_n their_o life_n and_o doctrine_n which_o principaly_a i_o desire_v to_o see_v discuss_v he_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o answer_v scarce_o any_o thing_n to_o the_o purpose_n but_o run_v into_o a_o great_a exclamation_n of_o popish_a slanderer_n and_o against_o the_o absurdity_n of_o indulgence_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v not_o now_o in_o question_n he_o ought_v to_o have_v examine_v the_o place_n out_o of_o luther_n own_o write_n about_o himself_o and_o other_o both_o for_o life_n and_o doctrine_n but_o this_o be_v not_o do_v only_o in_o general_n he_o will_v seem_v to_o excuse_v matter_n or_o rather_o to_o divert_v the_o reader_n from_o attention_n unto_o they_o with_o this_o flourish_n of_o word_n as_o for_o berengari●s_n say_v chark_n huss_n wicleff_n luther_n etc._n etc._n we_o measure_v they_o according_a to_o those_o time_n wherein_o the_o lord_n stir_v they_o up_o 78._o and_o according_a to_o that_o measure_n of_o grace_n and_o light_n he_o bestow_v upon_o they_o and_o whatsoever_o be_v their_o jmperfection_n therein_o we_o do_v not_o justify_v they_o but_o give_v god_n the_o praise_n of_o his_o work_n and_o leave_v they_o to_o their_o place_n as_o man_n yet_o we_o may_v and_o will_v thus_o far_o defend_v they_o against_o that_o doggish_a tooth_n of_o youree_n that_o in_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o faith_n whereupon_o depend_v salvation_n they_o be_v find_v with_o athanasius_n and_o all_o other_o holy_a man_n of_o god_n these_o word_n i_o say_v may_v be_v as_o well_o apply_v as_o a_o apology_n to_o turk_n jew_n and_o all_o heretic_n as_o to_o luther_n calvin_n beza_n cranmer_n for_o turk_n jew_n and_o all_o heretic_n agree_v with_o catholic_n and_o athanasius_n in_o some_o point_n of_o faith_n though_o in_o their_o imperfection_n as_o blasphemy_n judaism_n turkism_n heresy_n etc._n etc._n they_o do_v not_o agree_v with_o athanasius_n and_o therein_o we_o do_v not_o justify_v they_o be_v not_o this_o a_o good_a excuse_n think_v i_o with_o myself_o and_o be_v it_o not_o a_o goodly_a church_n that_o admit_v of_o such_o companion_n and_o fraternity_n say_v walsingham_n what_o he_o mean_v ●●en_o he_o say_v in_o the_o principal_a point_n of_o faith_n whereupon_o depend_v salvation_n i_o can_v not_o tell_v see_v he_o give_v no_o certain_a rule_n to_o know_v they_o and_o beside_o i_o consider_v that_o luther_n and_o 〈◊〉_d lutheran_n do_v affirm_v in_o their_o book_n even_o to_o this_o day_n that_o we_o ●scan●ants_v of_o england_n be_v damn_v heretic_n for_o deny_v the_o real_a pray_fw-mi 〈…〉_z and_o on_o the_o contrary_a side_n we_o say_v that_o they_o be_v good_a protestant_n 〈◊〉_d holy_a man_n and_o our_o brethren_n though_o they_o hold_v the_o real_a presence_n which_o we_o deny_v and_o condemn_v for_o idolatry_n to_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o my_o difficulty_n i_o find_v in_o effect_n no_o substantial_a answer_n at_o all_o mr._n walsinghams_n last_o appearance_n before_o my_o lord_n of_o canterbury_n and_o his_o doctor_n the_o prefix_a time_n of_o my_o appearance_n draw_v near_o i_o repair_v to_o london_n and_o upon_o the_o last_o day_n of_o easter_n term_v i_o go_v to_o lambeth_n to_o present_v myself_o to_o my_o lord_n who_o be_v not_o yet_o come_v from_o westminster_n though_o in_o 〈◊〉_d absence_n there_o sit_v as_o i_o understand_v divers_a doctor_n and_o prelate_n about_o matter_n of_o religion_n in_o his_o house_n at_o lambeth_n at_o length_n my_o lord_n come_v home_o and_o a_o great_a train_n with_o he_o come_v out_o of_o his_o garden_n he_o cast_v his_o eye_n upon_o i_o and_o present_o say_v unto_o i_o with_o a_o friendly_a countenanee_n and_o somewhat_o a_o low_a voice_n now_o mr._n walsingham_n how_o do_v you_o be_v you_o satisfy_v to_o who_o i_o answer_v no_o true_o my_o lord_n i_o be_o not_o yet_o satisfy_v whereunto_o he_o reply_v nothing_o but_o go_v and_o sit_v down_o at_o his_o table_n in_o the_o parlour_n together_o with_o his_o doctor_n and_o prelate_n about_o he_o whither_o after_o a_o little_a time_n i_o be_v call_v and_o then_o my_o lord_n begin_v to_o explain_v my_o case_n unto_o they_o how_o i_o desire_v to_o be_v satisfy_v in_o matter_n of_o fact_n contain_v in_o the_o defence_n what_o pain_v his_o lordship_n have_v take_v with_o i_o and_o other_o at_o his_o appointment_n and_o finaly_a that_o he_o have_v deliver_v unto_o i_o two_o book_n of_o mr._n bell_n write_v against_o the_o papist_n to_o satisfy_v i_o withal_o and_o then_o he_o call_v i_o close_o unto_o he_o at_o the_o table_n end_n and_o ask_v i_o very_o serious_o whether_o i_o have_v read_v they_o and_o what_o i_o think_v of_o they_o to_o this_o i_o answer_v that_o i_o have_v read_v they_o over_o with_o diligence_n and_o that_o my_o judgement_n be_v that_o the_o author_n be_v a_o golden_a bell_n but_o his_o sound_n like_o as_o of_o a_o brazen_a candlestick_n which_o i_o say_v in_o respect_n of_o the_o many_o golden_a advice_n inference_n corollary_n and_o the_o golden_a sentence_n which_o he_o mention_v so_o often_o in_o his_o book_n but_o that_o his_o sound_n be_v no_o better_o then_o of_o brass_n according_a to_o the_o apostle_n similitude_n for_o that_o he_o seem_v not_o only_o to_o have_v no_o charity_n in_o his_o write_n but_o neither_o truth_n nor_o sincerity_n in_o his_o allegation_n the_o archbishop_n hear_v i_o call_v he_o a_o golden_a bell_n in_o the_o first_o part_n of_o my_o answer_n seem_v much_o content_v say_v that_o be_v well_o but_o hear_v the_o second_o demand_v why_o so_o and_o doctor_n barlow_n dean_n of_o chester_n afterward_o bishop_n of_o lincoln_n look_v back_o upon_o i_o with_o more_o displeasure_n as_o it_o seem_v than_o the_o rest_n say_v why_o what_o say_v you_o to_o mr._n bell_n and_o all_o the_o other_o doctor_n in_o like_a manner_n cast_v their_o eye_n upon_o i_o room_n but_o i_o give_v the_o reason_n 〈◊〉_d mention_v and_o then_o my_o lord_n answer_v and_o will_v i_o to_o show_v wherein_o i_o have_v make_v that_o observation_n i_o lay_v forth_o upon_o the_o table_n before_o they_o the_o two_o book_n that_o i_o have_v peruse_v turn_v to_o the_o place_n of_o st._n chrysostom_n st._n augustin_n and_o other_o father_n which_o i_o pretend_v to_o have_v be_v untrue_o allege_v by_o he_o presuppose_v that_o my_o lord_n will_v present_o h●●e_v command_v the_o say_v father_n work_v to_o have_v be_v bring_v forth_o out_o of_o his_o study_n and_o the_o place_n quote_v to_o be_v examine_v in_o all_o their_o presence_n but_o no_o such_o matter_n ensue_v for_o my_o lord_n have_v slight_o look_v over_o the_o place_n in_o bell_n as_o he_o cit_v they_o he_o lay_v they_o down_o again_o and_o the_o doctor_n take_v they_o up_o to_o peruse_v in_o which_o mean_a space_n his_o lordship_n begin_v to_o talk_v somewhat_o private_o and_o mild_o with_o i_o concern_v thing_n object_v by_o the_o defence_n of_o the_o censure_n against_o luther_n etc._n etc._n my_o lord_n begin_v to_o talk_v unto_o doctor_n barlow_n who_o this_o while_n with_o the_o rest_n be_v look_v on_o bell_n book_n and_o begin_v to_o speak_v somewhat_o concern_v they_o seem_v to_o maintain_v somewhat_o a_o good_a opinion_n of_o bell_n fidelity_n which_o yet_o appear_v not_o to_o be_v great_a with_o my_o lord_n himself_o as_o by_o some_o conjecture_n i_o gather_v but_o none_o of_o they_o as_o i_o say_v so_o much_o as_o once_o offer_v to_o call_v for_o the_o father_n work_n themselves_o to_o examine_v the_o place_n which_o be_v my_o desire_n but_o after_o some_o few_o word_n to_o and_o fro_o among_o themselves_o my_o lord_n command_v i_o to_o stand_v a_o side_n whilst_o they_o talk_v whereupon_o i_o retire_v myself_o by_o little_a and_o little_o down_o to_o the_o low_a end_n of_o the_o parlour_n that_o they_o may_v confer_v more_o free_o they_o talk_v together_o of_o this_o and_o other_o matter_n and_o after_o
for_o refuse_v to_o roman_a catholic_n a_o public_a trial_n of_o falsification_n and_o a_o amicable_a conference_n of_o religion_n make_v the_o refusal_n yet_o more_o unreasonable_a popery_n say_v every_o protestant_n be_v a_o grow_a religion_n if_o dispute_v thereof_o be_v admit_v we_o shall_v turn_v all_o papist_n if_o they_o be_v not_o persecute_v their_o profession_n will_v prevail_v if_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n be_v grant_v very_o few_o will_v frequent_v protestant_a church_n the_o prelatic_a clergys_n last_o reason_n be_v venient_fw-la romani_fw-la &_o tollent_fw-la locum_fw-la nostrum_fw-la if_o we_o come_v once_o to_o reason_n the_o matter_n with_o roman_a catholic_n infallible_o we_o shall_v loose_v our_o revenue_n but_o i_o may_v assiure_v they_o that_o the_o roman_a clergy_n covet_v not_o their_o revenue_n if_o it_o be_v find_v that_o we_o have_v any_o right_n to_o the_o church_n live_n we_o will_v lay_v our_o pretension_n at_o his_o majesty_n foot_n and_o petition_v the_o pope_n as_o we_o do_v in_o queen_n marys_n day_n to_o leave_v all_o to_o the_o king_n and_o parliament_n disposal_n for_o the_o ease_n and_o defence_n of_o our_o fellow_n subject_n and_o the_o terror_n of_o our_o enemy_n and_o as_o for_o our_o religion_n be_v a_o grow_a religion_n we_o can_v deny_v it_o and_o rejoice_v that_o our_o adversary_n confess_v so_o much_o how_o can_v it_o otherwise_o be_v the_o catholic_n or_o become_v universal_a protestancy_n be_v confine_v to_o this_o northern_a climate_n notwithstanding_o its_o liberty_n of_o open_a and_o sensual_a allurement_n the_o mahometan_a persuasion_n be_v propagate_v by_o force_n of_o arm_n and_o multiplicity_n of_o wife_n the_o greek_a schism_n be_v but_o a_o spite_n and_o spleen_n against_o the_o primacy_n of_o rome_n and_o therefore_o be_v just_o become_v a_o slavery_n to_o the_o turk_n no_o religion_n but_o the_o roman_n catholic_n do_v grow_v and_o flourish_v maugre_o the_o storm_n of_o outward_a persecution_n and_o the_o strength_n of_o our_o inward_a perverse_a inclination_n against_o it_o we_o follow_v reason_n against_o the_o appearance_n of_o sense_n we_o prefer_v virtue_n before_o vice_n the_o judgement_n of_o the_o church_n before_o our_o own_o and_o heaven_n before_o earth_n and_o therefore_o we_o be_v make_v stranger_n in_o our_o own_o country_n straggler_n abroad_o tenant_n at_o will_n of_o our_o own_o estate_n and_o our_o life_n stand_v at_o the_o mercy_n of_o every_o base_a informer_n that_o will_v press_v the_o law_n against_o our_o conscience_n and_o yet_o in_o this_o sad_a condition_n and_o circumstance_n our_o religion_n do_v increase_v and_o be_v acknowledge_v to_o be_v a_o grow_a religion_n ergo_fw-la it_o be_v the_o true_a catholic_n and_o not_o only_o the_o most_o safe_a for_o the_o soul_n but_o the_o most_o convenient_a for_o the_o state_n especial_o of_o great_a britain_n as_o now_o shall_v more_o particular_o appear_v sect_n xiii_o the_o same_o further_o demonstrate_v and_o how_o by_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n or_o by_o tolerate_v the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n by_o act_n of_o parliament_n the_o british_a monarchy_n will_v become_v the_o most_o considerable_a of_o all_o christendom_n peaceable_a at_o home_n and_o recover_v its_o right_n abroad_o how_o evident_o it_o be_v the_o mutual_a interest_n of_o spain_n and_o england_n to_o be_v in_o a_o perpetual_a league_n against_o france_n and_o how_o advantageous_a it_o be_v for_o spain_n to_o put_v flanders_n into_o english_a hand_n three_o thing_n must_v concur_v to_o make_v a_o monarchy_n powerful_a and_o peaceable_a 1._o uniformity_n in_o religion_n or_o at_o least_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n 2._o great_a revenue_n of_o the_o monarch_n without_o empoverish_v by_o unusual_a and_o unimerciful_a tax_n the_o subject_n unless_o they_o be_v slave_n 3_o man_n fit_a for_o sea_n and_o land_n service_n these_o island_n afford_v the_o last_o the_o other_o two_o we_o want_v but_o may_v have_v they_o if_o we_o will_v by_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n for_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n or_o for_o tolerate_v the_o old_a faith_n of_o our_o ancestor_n wherewith_o this_o kingdom_n flourish_v in_o peace_n and_o prosperity_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 1000_o year_n such_o a_o act_n i_o mean_v as_o may_v make_v legal_a one_o profession_n but_o wherein_o there_o ought_v to_o be_v a_o proviso_n that_o none_o of_o another_o suffer_v for_o his_o conscience_n or_o religion_n especial_o for_o the_o roman_n catholic_n that_o without_o uniformity_n in_o religion_n or_o without_o liberty_n of_o conscience_n it_o be_v impossible_a for_o a_o monarchy_n to_o be_v long_o peaceable_a or_o powerful_a be_v manifest_a by_o reason_n and_o experience_n reason_n do_v dictate_v that_o when_o man_n mind_n be_v discontent_v and_o oppress_v by_o persecution_n for_o their_o conscience_n they_o will_v hazard_v their_o all_o to_o be_v satisfy_v and_o save_v their_o rebellion_n against_o the_o sovereign_n will_v be_v think_v the_o ground_n of_o their_o salvation_n or_o at_o least_o the_o only_a way_n to_o preserve_v their_o posterity_n from_o be_v damn_v and_o bring_v up_o in_o the_o state_n false_a religion_n experience_n do_v show_v that_o diversity_n of_o opinion_n if_o but_o one_o be_v permit_v do_v not_o only_a occasion_n domestic_a difference_n as_o the_o part_n of_o man_n and_o wife_n of_o parent_n and_o child_n brother_n and_o sister_n etc._n etc._n but_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o public_a inconvenience_n as_o jealousy_n between_o prince_n and_o subject_n from_o whence_o proceed_v civil_a war_n which_o be_v the_o great_a obstacle_n of_o prosperity_n in_o a_o empire_n or_o commonwealth_n whilst_o the_o hugonot_n be_v persecute_v in_o france_n france_n be_v not_o so_o considerable_a here_o in_o england_n we_o be_v more_o afraid_a of_o persecute_a presbyterian_o fanatic_n and_o other_o sectary_n than_o of_o the_o french_a dane_n and_o dutch_a see_v therefore_o liberty_n or_o uniformity_n in_o religion_n be_v so_o necessary_a for_o the_o peace_n and_o power_n of_o a_o monarchy_n all_o statesman_n must_v grant_v the_o religion_n fit_a for_o the_o state_n be_v that_o which_o be_v most_o likely_a to_o be_v general_o embrace_v if_o man_n may_v have_v their_o free_a choice_n now_o whether_o that_o be_v protestancy_n or_o popery_n be_v the_o question_n it_o be_v not_o protestancy_n because_o it_o be_v now_o a_o hundred_o year_n and_o more_o since_o it_o have_v be_v endeavour_v by_o all_o way_n imaginable_a to_o bring_v the_o subject_n of_o the_o crown_n of_o england_n unto_o a_o uniformity_n in_o protestancy_n even_o by_o sanguinary_a and_o penal_a statute_n and_o yet_o the_o design_n do_v not_o take_v and_o indeed_o can_v because_o it_o involve_v a_o contradiction_n for_o to_o be_v a_o protestant_n be_v to_o have_v the_o liberty_n of_o op●ning_n and_o the_o gift_n of_o interpret_n scripture_n which_o liberty_n and_o prerogative_n be_v not_o consistent_a with_o a_o subjection_n of_o judgement_n to_o the_o authority_n and_o interpretation_n of_o any_o church_n or_o council_n and_o by_o consequence_n not_o with_o unity_n of_o faith_n beside_o the_o protestant_a church_n whether_o prelatic_a presbyterian_a or_o fanatic_a be_v not_o as_o much_o as_o pretend_v to_o be_v infallible_a in_o doctrine_n or_o in_o its_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n and_o it_o be_v a_o great_a vanity_n for_o a_o church_n that_o profess_v fallibility_n in_o explain_v the_o scripture_n and_o admit_v a_o liberty_n or_o latitude_n of_o apply_v the_o letter_n of_o the_o same_o to_o every_o private_a man_n spirit_n and_o interpretation_n to_o oblige_v man_n to_o any_o unity_n or_o certainty_n of_o faith_n and_o therefore_o our_o act_n of_o parliament_n be_v so_o inefficacious_a again_n faith_n be_v not_o christian_n unless_o the_o believer_n hold_v it_o certain_a and_o no_o believer_n can_v hold_v his_o own_o faith_n certain_a if_o he_o submit_v and_o comform_v his_o judgement_n to_o the_o doctrine_n and_o decree_n of_o a_o fallible_a church_n for_o that_o no_o man_n can_v think_v himself_o certain_a of_o what_o he_o know_v may_v fail_v evident_a therefore_o it_o be_v that_o the_o protestant_a faith_n be_v neither_o christian_a nor_o certain_a because_o the_o professor_n thereof_o if_o they_o be_v guide_v by_o their_o confess_a fallible_a church_n must_v know_v that_o their_o faith_n may_v be_v false_a the_o roman_a catholic_n church_n see_v it_o be_v believe_v infallible_a by_o all_o catholic_n may_v teach_v a_o faith_n which_o must_v be_v think_v by_o we_o to_o be_v certain_a conscientious_a christian_a and_o by_o consequence_n convenient_a fit_a for_o both_o soul_n and_o state_n how_o conscientious_a and_o necessary_a it_o be_v for_o the_o salvation_n of_o the_o soul_n we_o have_v prove_v in_o this_o whole_a treatise_n as_o also_o how_o convenient_a for_o the_o state_n now_o i_o will_v show_v the_o same_o in_o a_o word_n and_o by_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o adversary_n it_o be_v a_o grow_a religion_n say_v they_o therefore_o i_o infer_v
convenient_a and_o fit_a for_o that_o uniformity_n of_o faith_n and_o union_n of_o heart_n which_o cement_v the_o people_n with_o their_o sovereign_n and_o among_o themselves_o it_o be_v indeed_o so_o grow_v a_o religion_n that_o it_o have_v spread_v itself_o over_o the_o whole_a world_n not_o by_o force_n of_o arm_n but_o of_o truth_n 1_o not_o by_o allow_v lewd_a liberty_n or_o licentiousness_n but_o by_o work_a miracle_n by_o profess_v and_o observe_v abstinence_n chastity_n poverty_n and_o obedience_n to_o spiritual_a and_o temporal_a superior_n by_o mortify_v our_o passion_n and_o the_o perverse_a inclination_n of_o a_o spiritual_a pride_n and_o proper_a judgement_n this_o pride_n and_o property_n of_o judgement_n the_o source_n of_o heresy_n we_o renounce_v by_o submit_v our_o opinion_n to_o the_o church_n acknowledge_v in_o the_o same_o god_n infallible_a assistance_n and_o authority_n and_o this_o our_o submission_n proceed_v not_o from_o simplicity_n credulity_n or_o rashness_n but_o we_o be_v induce_v thereunto_o by_o evident_a mark_n of_o god_n favour_n and_o providence_n clar_o appear_v in_o our_o roman_a catholic_n church_n and_o in_o no_o other_o as_o miracle_n conversion_n of_o nation_n succession_n and_o sanctity_n of_o pastor_n etc._n etc._n whereby_o the_o most_o learned_a man_n of_o the_o world_n in_o every_o age_n since_o the_o apostle_n have_v be_v evident_o convince_v of_o a_o obligation_n to_o conform_v their_o faith_n to_o a_o church_n so_o supernatural_o qualify_v and_o therefore_o do_v prudent_o believe_v that_o none_o but_o god_n be_v author_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n doctrine_n and_o we_o judge_v ourselves_o bind_v under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o follow_v their_o example_n for_o these_o sign_n of_o divine_a providence_n be_v so_o far_o above_o the_o force_n and_o course_n of_o nature_n and_o so_o visible_a to_o all_o the_o world_n that_o not_o only_o the_o learned_a but_o all_o sort_n of_o people_n who_o be_v not_o wilful_o obstinate_a must_v confess_v a_o sufficient_a evidence_n of_o god_n commission_n and_o authority_n in_o our_o church_n and_o by_o consequence_n they_o deny_v god_n veracity_n who_o contradict_v the_o doctrine_n of_o a_o congregation_n that_o have_v so_o notorious_a and_o significant_a badge_n of_o his_o divine_a trust_n for_o propose_v article_n of_o faith_n and_o compose_v all_o difference_n in_o religion_n so_o that_o have_v for_o our_o guide_n a_o church_n of_o so_o authentic_a authority_n &_o a_o testimony_n to_o rely_v upon_o so_o visible_o confirm_v by_o supernatural_a miracle_n &_o mark_n of_o god_n commission_n the_o same_o church_n must_v needs_o have_v his_o infallible_a assistance_n in_o discharge_v her_o trust_n of_o instruct_v mankind_n wherefore_o we_o catholic_n may_v &_o do_v uniform_o agree_v &_o acquiess_n in_o her_o difinition_n with_o as_o little_a fear_n of_o be_v seduce_v as_o of_o god_n be_v the_o seducer_n he_o must_v be_v very_o unreasonable_a who_o after_o be_v inform_v of_o these_o motive_n of_o credibility_n or_o mark_n of_o god_n church_n will_v refuse_v to_o submit_v his_o judgement_n to_o so_o convince_a argument_n of_o the_o divine_a authority_n and_o this_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o not_o only_o the_o native_n of_o one_o country_n or_o the_o subject_n of_o one_o monarch_n but_o whole_a kingdom_n and_o king_n of_o most_o different_a temper_n and_o interest_n do_v so_o easy_o constant_o and_o unanimous_o submit_v and_o adhear_v to_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n both_o now_o and_o in_o former_a age_n whereas_o they_o who_o at_o any_o time_n oppose_v the_o same_o can_v never_o agree_v among_o themselves_o or_o with_o themselves_o but_o be_v and_o be_v divide_v into_o as_o many_o opinion_n as_o there_o be_v fancy_n or_o occasion_n offer_v of_o change_v their_o inclination_n or_o of_o raise_v their_o fortune_n and_o now_o our_o statesman_n may_v easy_o conclude_v which_o of_o both_o religion_n be_v not_o only_o most_o conscientious_a for_o the_o soul_n but_o most_o convenient_a for_o the_o power_n and_o peace_n of_o the_o state_n if_o they_o will_v reflect_v upon_o the_o different_a way_n of_o plant_v and_o preserve_v both_o religion_n the_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n to_o omit_v other_o example_n let_v they_o consider_v how_o st._n austin_n our_o apostle_n of_o england_n arrive_v at_o kent_n with_o forty_o monk_n and_o preacher_n enter_v into_o canterbury_n as_o our_o adversary_n fox_n confess_v p._n 150._o in_o procession_n with_o a_o crucifix_n carry_v before_o he_o and_o sing_v litany_n and_o how_o they_o convert_v that_o kingdom_n and_o all_o england_n from_o paganism_n to_o the_o very_a same_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n we_o now_o profess_v in_o every_o particular_a not_o by_o force_n of_o arm_n or_o by_o fraud_n of_o falsify_v the_o letter_n and_o sense_n of_o scripture_n 1_o but_o by_o work_v confess_v miracle_n in_o confirmation_n of_o our_o roman_a text_n and_o sense_n of_o scripture_n which_o they_o preach_v and_o by_o the_o example_n of_o a_o godly_a life_n how_o this_o same_o religion_n continue_v for_o almost_o a_o thousand_o year_n in_o this_o island_n and_o in_o all_o that_o time_n never_o be_v there_o any_o rebellion_n upon_o the_o score_n of_o our_o doctrine_n or_o of_o interpret_n of_o scripture_n much_o less_o do_v the_o subject_n pretend_v scripture_n or_o the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o warrant_v a_o superiority_n over_o their_o sovereign_n or_o to_o try_v he_o by_o a_o formal_a court_n of_o justice_n on_o the_o other_o side_n our_o statesman_n will_v find_v in_o all_o history_n and_o this_o treatise_n that_o in_o this_o one_o age_n since_o protestancy_n begin_v that_o reformation_n have_v not_o enter_v without_o rebellion_n or_o tyranny_n into_o any_o one_o kingdom_n country_n or_o city_n that_o he_o who_o first_o preach_v this_o reformation_n luther_n do_v see_v it_o divide_v into_o more_o sect_n than_o himself_o have_v year_n though_o he_o live_v to_o be_v a_o old_a man._n that_o never_o any_o of_o these_o sect_n continue_v long_o without_o embroil_v the_o state_n that_o never_o miracle_n be_v wrought_v to_o confirm_v any_o kind_n of_o protestancy_n nor_o the_o author_n of_o any_o of_o these_o sect_n or_o reformation_n live_v with_o the_o esteem_n i_o do_v not_o say_v of_o holy_a but_o of_o honest_a conversation_n no_o marvel_n therefore_o if_o people_n so_o natural_o honest_a as_o the_o english_a can_v be_v bring_v to_o uniformity_n in_o a_o reformation_n so_o unlikely_a to_o be_v divine_a &_o that_o be_v begin_v by_o a_o dissolute_a and_o drunken_a friar_n who_o have_v no_o rule_n of_o faith_n but_o his_o own_o fancy_n the_o marvel_n indeed_o be_v that_o any_o sober_a man_n can_v be_v persuade_v it_o be_v possible_a to_o bring_v pious_a &_o prudent_a man_n to_o reject_v the_o old_a religion_n confirm_v with_o so_o many_o supernatural_a sign_n &_o renown_v for_o so_o long_a &_o successful_a subjection_n to_o lawful_a king_n for_o a_o new_a fangle_a device_n introduce_v into_o england_n by_o a_o illegitimate_a queen_n in_o opposition_n to_o the_o title_n and_o know_v right_o of_o our_o lawful_a sovereign_n see_v therefore_o our_o adversary_n do_v confess_v that_o the_o roman_n catholic_n be_v a_o grow_a religion_n even_o in_o this_o groan_a and_o sad_a condition_n wherein_o we_o be_v keep_v in_o these_o kingdom_n who_o doubt_v but_o that_o if_o make_v the_o religion_n of_o the_o state_n and_o countenance_v by_o law_n or_o even_o tolerate_v it_o will_v soon_o grow_v to_o such_o a_o height_n that_o all_o other_o persuasion_n will_v be_v render_v contemptible_a and_o incapable_a of_o thwart_v the_o design_n and_o decree_n that_o will_v be_v resolve_v upon_o by_o the_o king_n and_o parliament_n when_o law_n religion_n and_o reason_n walk_v hand_n in_o hand_n there_o be_v no_o room_n or_o pretext_n leave_v for_o rebellion_n upon_o the_o score_n of_o conscience_n and_o what_o can_v be_v more_o legal_a than_o a_o act_n of_o parliament_n what_o more_o agreeable_a to_o religion_n and_o reason_n than_o that_o every_o man_n ought_v to_o submit_v his_o judgement_n to_o authority_n so_o authentik_o divine_a and_o so_o prudent_o judge_v to_o be_v infallible_a as_o that_o of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n ghurch_n for_o what_o more_o convince_a argument_n can_v there_o be_v of_o divine_a and_o infallible_a authority_n than_o the_o undeniable_a miracle_n sanctity_n succession_n both_o of_o doctrine_n and_o doctor_n conversion_n of_o king_n and_o nation_n etc._n etc._n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n he_o who_o deny_v any_o of_o these_o must_v consequent_o resolve_v to_o believe_v nothing_o and_o even_o to_o doubt_v of_o himself_o of_o his_o parent_n country_n and_o relation_n because_o no_o man_n have_v or_o can_v have_v a_o more_o credible_a testimony_n or_o a_o more_o constant_a tradition_n for_o any_o one_o of_o these_o particular_n concern_v his_o parent_n country_n etc._n etc._n than_o he_o have_v for_o the_o miracle_n wrought_v in_o
the_o spaniard_n hear_v of_o such_o a_o proposition_n nor_o the_o catholic_n native_n accept_v of_o we_o if_o their_o master_n will_v grant_v it_o the_o spaniard_n understand_v how_o interwoven_a the_o interest_n of_o their_o monarchy_n be_v with_o we_o in_o case_n we_o give_v liberty_n to_o catholic_n but_o think_v it_o not_o policy_n to_o trust_v we_o much_o upon_o any_o other_o term_n and_o desire_v our_o conversion_n or_o a_o toleration_n not_o only_o out_o of_o charity_n to_o other_o but_o out_o of_o conveniency_n to_o themselves_o and_o therefore_o they_o be_v so_o earnest_a with_o our_o late_a king_n in_o spain_n to_o renounce_v his_o protestancy_n and_o some_o attribute_n to_o his_o aversion_n against_o the_o catholic_n profession_n the_o breach_n of_o the_o spanish_a match_n we_o see_v how_o they_o send_v three_o ambassador_n one_o upon_o another_o to_o demand_v the_o late_a royal_a princess_n of_o orange_n for_o the_o prince_n of_o spain_n not_o doubt_v but_o that_o in_o her_o tender_a year_n she_o will_v have_v be_v bring_v to_o be_v of_o her_o intend_a spouse_n his_o religion_n we_o have_v indeed_o be_v most_o happy_a in_o the_o person_n and_o royal_a issue_n of_o our_o virtuous_a queen_n and_o gracious_a queen_n mother_n and_o yet_o the_o french_a confess_v they_o do_v not_o that_o favour_n unto_o we_o for_o any_o happiness_n they_o wish_v we_o 295._o but_o to_o compass_v their_o own_o end_n and_o obtain_v some_o advantage_n of_o our_o late_a king_n when_o the_o passion_n of_o love_n to_o his_o beautiful_a spouse_n make_v he_o forget_v the_o reason_n he_o have_v to_o be_v averse_a from_o match_v in_o her_o family_n our_o alliance_n with_o spain_n be_v conjunction_n of_o both_o monarchys_n against_o a_o irreconciliable_a and_o common_a enemy_n france_n they_o be_v not_o only_o private_a contract_n between_o the_o marry_a prince_n but_o public_a concern_v of_o their_o loyal_a people_n the_o puritan_n always_o oppose_v they_o for_o that_o they_o know_v match_n with_o spain_n engage_v that_o monarchy_n in_o cross_v their_o presbyterian_a plot_n and_o design_n against_o our_o monarch_n they_o will_v not_o have_v presume_v to_o rebel_n against_o charles_n the_o i._o have_v it_o not_o be_v the_o interest_n of_o the_o french_a king_n to_o foment_n rebellion_n against_o the_o lawful_a king_n of_o england_n and_o the_o english_a king_n of_o france_n whereas_o on_o the_o contrary_a it_o be_v the_o interest_n of_o spain_n to_o maintain_v the_o right_n of_o our_o king_n increase_v their_o power_n and_o offer_v they_o conveniency_n and_o help_n to_o recover_v their_o own_o in_o france_n we_o may_v therefore_o say_v with_o truth_n that_o the_o french_a king_n and_o minister_n seek_v our_o alliance_n thereby_o to_o lessen_v our_o power_n but_o the_o spaniard_n to_o increase_v it_o we_o must_v judge_v of_o the_o intention_n of_o prince_n by_o their_o interest_n it_o be_v the_o interest_n of_o spain_n that_o england_n be_v powerful_a it_o be_v the_o interest_n of_o the_o french_a king_n to_o destroy_v both_o it_o and_o that_o line_n which_o claim_v a_o right_a to_o france_n we_o see_v how_o much_o addict_v he_o and_o his_o minister_n be_v to_o the_o late_a usurper_n and_o rebel_n by_o their_o kindness_n to_o cromwell_n and_o to_o his_o son_n it_o do_v appear_v they_o have_v rather_o any_o line_n shall_v reign_v then_o the_o right_n and_o because_o our_o king_n ancient_n right_o to_o france_n if_o they_o do_v favour_n catholic_n will_v in_o all_o liklihood_n give_v they_o foot_v in_o normandy_n and_o aquitain_n some_o politian_n be_v of_o opinion_n that_o the_o french_a statesman_n like_v well_o enough_o of_o protestancy_n in_o england_n how_o far_o their_o christianity_n do_v incline_v they_o to_o wish_v our_o king_n and_o these_o kingdom_n be_v catholic_n we_o can_v tell_v but_o their_o policy_n and_o proceed_n seem_v not_o show_v any_o great_a zeal_n for_o our_o conversion_n fear_v perhaps_o that_o popery_n may_v make_v we_o popular_a in_o france_n and_o put_v we_o into_o a_o condition_n of_o recover_v our_o own_o to_o conclude_v this_o matter_n of_o state_n wherein_o i_o be_o engage_v against_o my_o will_n by_o the_o impertinency_n and_o importunity_n of_o our_o adversary_n pretend_v that_o our_o cotholick_a religion_n be_v disadvantageous_a to_o these_o kingdom_n and_o by_o reason_n of_o the_o too_o great_a influence_n such_o humane_a consideration_n as_o these_o have_v upon_o state_n minister_n in_o their_o choice_n and_o settlement_n of_o divine_a worship_n in_o commonwealth_n i_o desire_v the_o judicious_a reader_n will_v reflect_v upon_o the_o situation_n and_o fertility_n of_o these_o island_n the_o honest_a disposition_n and_o warlike_a genius_n of_o the_o inhabitant_n the_o irreconciliable_a quarrel_n of_o the_o french_a king_n to_o we_o the_o interest_n of_o spain_n in_o promote_a these_o our_o right_n and_o then_o after_o mature_a consideration_n let_v he_o be_v judge_n whether_o any_o monarchy_n in_o christendom_n have_v such_o mean_n and_o may_v make_v such_o friend_n to_o raise_v itself_o without_o injustice_n into_o a_o great_a empire_n and_o what_o great_a pity_n it_o be_v that_o all_o these_o mean_n and_o friend_n be_v render_v unprofitable_a by_o our_o persecute_v the_o old_a faith_n and_o by_o profess_v a_o new_a religion_n that_o divide_v we_o at_o home_n make_v our_o government_n odious_a to_o such_o as_o ought_v to_o be_v our_o subject_n abroad_o and_o deprive_v we_o of_o the_o true_a friendship_n and_o succour_n of_o spain_n who_o interest_n it_o be_v that_o we_o be_v or_o at_o least_o do_v tolerate_v catholic_n and_o be_v so_o considerable_a as_o to_o gain_v our_o own_o or_o by_o endeavour_v to_o regain_v france_n be_v able_a to_o divert_v the_o french_a from_o invade_v spain_n italy_n and_o flanders_n this_o be_v as_o much_o as_o i_o think_v fit_a and_o perhaps_o more_o than_o some_o will_v think_v i_o ought_v to_o say_v in_o a_o matter_n of_o this_o nature_n but_o something_o must_v have_v be_v answer_v to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o our_o politic_a controversor_n who_o continual_o harp_n upon_o this_o string_n of_o reason_n of_o state_n in_o their_o book_n against_o the_o roman_n catholic_n faith_n pretend_v to_o demonstrate_v that_o it_o be_v inconsistent_a with_o the_o interest_n and_o greatness_n of_o our_o king_n with_o the_o peace_n and_o prosperity_n of_o their_o subject_n therefore_o leave_v this_o argument_n i_o will_v return_v to_o that_o which_o be_v more_o proper_a for_o my_o profession_n and_o show_v how_o manifest_o god_n have_v confirm_v our_o catholic_n faith_n and_o confute_v the_o protestant_a persuasion_n by_o miracle_n which_o be_v the_o great_a evidence_n that_o be_v consistent_a with_o the_o nature_n and_o merit_n of_o christian_a belief_n for_o every_o point_n wherein_o protestant_n &_o we_o differ_v i_o will_v relate_v miracle_n wrought_v in_o favour_n of_o our_o doctrine_n and_o our_o sense_n of_o scripture_n against_o they_o not_o record_v by_o uncertain_a or_o obscure_a author_n but_o by_o the_o prime_a saint_n and_o doctor_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n in_o the_o age_n wherein_o they_o live_v the_o four_o part_n the_o roman_a catholic_n religion_n in_o every_o particular_a wherein_o it_o differ_v from_o the_o protestant_n confirm_v by_o undeniable_a miracle_n sect_n i._o that_o such_o miracle_n as_o be_v approve_v by_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n in_o the_o canonization_n of_o saint_n be_v true_a miracle_n and_o the_o doctrine_n which_o they_o confirm_v can_v not_o be_v reject_v without_o deny_v or_o doubt_v of_o god_n veracity_n and_o how_o every_o protestant_n do_v see_v true_a miracle_n though_o he_o do_v not_o reflect_v upon_o they_o in_o confirmation_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n faith_n by_o miracle_n approve_v by_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n i_o understand_v such_o miracle_n as_o induce_v the_o say_a church_n to_o canonize_v and_o worship_v for_o saint_n the_o person_n by_o who_o prayer_n or_o relic_n they_o be_v wrought_v as_o for_o other_o miracle_n though_o i_o know_v many_o not_o mention_v in_o the_o act_n and_o process_n of_o saint_n canonisation_n be_v true_a so_o doubt_v i_o not_o but_o some_o vulgar_o report_v may_v be_v false_o but_o that_o be_v a_o thing_n whole_o impertinent_a to_o my_o design_n and_o the_o dispute_n against_o protestant_n it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o my_o purpose_n and_o their_o confusion_n that_o some_o true_a miracle_n have_v be_v and_o be_v wrought_v in_o confirmation_n of_o that_o roman_n catholic_n doctrine_n which_o they_o deny_v or_o doubt_v of_o and_o we_o believe_v and_o first_o we_o be_v to_o know_v that_o no_o confessor_n martyr_n have_v a_o privilege_n martyrdom_n itself_o be_v a_o notorious_a miracle_n be_v canonize_v or_o worship_v by_o the_o roman_n catholic_n church_n before_o the_o pastor_n thereof_o see_v authentic_a proof_n of_o supernatural_a miracle_n wrought_v by_o those_o confessor_n or_o their_o relic_n
sidon_n they_o have_v long_o since_o don_v penance_n in_o sackcloth_n and_o ash_n 38_o the_o work_n which_o i_o have_v do_v in_o my_o father_n name_n bear_v witness_n of_o i_o and_o though_o you_o believe_v not_o i_o ●●_o believe_v my_o work_n and_o again_o we_o know_v that_o thou_o be_v a_o teacher_n come_v from_o god_n for_o no_o man_n can_v do_v these_o miracle_n thou_o do_v except_o god_n be_v with_o he_o and_o the_o reason_n why_o miracle_n oblige_v we_o in_o conscience_n to_o believe_v the_o doctrine_n by_o they_o confirm_v be_v because_o they_o be_v a_o sufficient_a and_o moral_a evidence_n of_o god_n authority_n and_o as_o it_o be_v the_o great_a seal_n wherewith_o he_o warrant_v his_o minister_n and_o the_o church_n to_o preach_v and_o propose_v his_o doctrine_n and_o command_v now_o if_o he_o can_v put_v this_o seal_n to_o any_o fall_v doctrine_n or_o thereby_o authorize_v a_o erroneous_a church_n man_n may_v prudent_o doubt_v whether_o he_o do_v not_o do_v so_o now_o de_fw-mi facto_fw-la and_o in_o every_o particular_a but_o with_o such_o a_o prudent_a doubt_n none_o be_v bind_v to_o obey_v any_o church_n authority_n and_o by_o consequence_n there_o can_v be_v no_o obstinacy_n heresy_n or_o infidelity_n against_o god_n revelation_n and_o veracity_n how_o ever_o so_o authentical_o and_o sufficient_o propose_v by_o miracle_n which_o be_v the_o sign_n and_o badge_n of_o divin_fw-fr authority_n and_o the_o most_o authentic_a mark_n of_o the_o true_a church_n to_o that_o ordinary_a objection_n of_o anti-christs_n miracle_n which_o though_o fall_v and_o feign_a yet_o will_v seem_v so_o true_a to_o many_o that_o most_o of_o the_o world_n will_v be_v seduce_v we_o answer_v 1._o that_o there_o will_v be_v a_o apparent_a difference_n between_o anti-christian_n and_o our_o catholic_n miracle_n though_o for_o want_v of_o due_a reflection_n prudence_n and_o piety_n man_n will_v not_o consider_v the_o difference_n nor_o compare_v his_o miracle_n with_o we_o 2._o christ_n word_n and_o warning_n of_o anti-christs_n feign_a miracle_n be_v a_o sufficient_a evidence_n of_o their_o falsehood_n because_o we_o must_v not_o credit_v ourselves_o or_o any_o outward_a appearance_n against_o the_o express_a word_n of_o christ._n this_o be_v the_o reason_n why_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o altar_n we_o be_v not_o deceive_v by_o the_o species_n or_o appearance_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n though_o there_o be_v no_o other_o argument_n that_o anti-christs_n miracle_n be_v false_a but_o this_o we_o that_o the_o miracle_n of_o the_o church_n both_o in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n be_v first_o and_o that_o we_o have_v a_o caveat_n to_o beware_v of_o such_o miracle_n and_o miraculist_n as_o shall_v come_v afterward_o to_o confirm_v contrary_a doctrine_n whosoever_o be_v move_v by_o antichrist_n or_o his_o forerunner_n to_o forsake_v the_o ancient_a faith_n and_o sign_n of_o the_o church_n for_o novelty_n how_o ever_o so_o plausible_o or_o prodigious_o confirm_v deserve_v damnation_n for_o there_o be_v two_o quality_n that_o oblige_v man_n in_o reason_n and_o conscience_n to_o prefer_v one_o thing_n before_o another_o how_o ever_o equal_a they_o both_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v in_o other_o respect_n 1._o priority_n of_o time_n 2._o present_a possession_n we_o see_v what_o privilege_n and_o prerogative_n be_v give_v by_o the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o nation_n to_o such_o as_o be_v ancient_a by_o birth_n or_o nobility_n than_o other_o and_o how_o possession_n be_v say_v to_o be_v eleven_o point_n of_o the_o law_n these_o quality_n be_v most_o proper_o find_v in_o our_o roman_a catholic_n doctrine_n it_o be_v most_o ancient_a and_o always_o have_v have_v the_o precedency_n of_o all_o pretend_a reformation_n both_o in_o time_n and_o in_o the_o possession_n of_o the_o heart_n of_o the_o faithful_a the_o same_o we_o say_v of_o our_o catholic_n miracle_n therefore_o we_o ought_v to_o prefer_v they_o before_o any_o other_o that_o shall_v appear_v afterward_o in_o opposition_n to_o they_o miracle_n beside_o those_o miracle_n so_o credible_o report_v that_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v they_o without_o be_v guilty_a of_o obstinacy_n and_o rashness_n and_o beside_o those_o other_o continualy_a visible_a as_o that_o of_o st._n januarius_n there_o be_v a_o other_o kind_n of_o true_a miracle_n see_v but_o not_o observe_v by_o every_o protestant_n upon_o which_o if_o they_o do_v reflect_v as_o many_o of_o they_o as_o mean_v well_o will_v become_v roman_a catholic_n the_o difference_n between_o true_a and_o false_a miracle_n be_v that_o true_a miracle_n be_v work_n beside_o or_o against_o the_o order_n of_o nature_n and_o of_o secundary_a cause_n and_o therefore_o may_v be_v do_v only_o by_o the_o divin_fw-fr power_n as_o to_o receive_v the_o dead_a to_o cure_v disease_n of_o the_o body_n and_o distemper_n of_o the_o mind_n without_o the_o application_n of_o any_o natural_a mean_n or_o remedy_n and_o because_o the_o devil_n have_v less_o power_n over_o soul_n then_o over_o body_n the_o cure_n of_o a_o distemper_n of_o the_o mind_n whereof_o no_o natural_a cause_n appear_v be_v a_o great_a and_o more_o authentic_a miracle_n than_o any_o cure_n of_o the_o body_n how_o ever_o so_o prodidious_a fall_v miracle_n be_v only_o such_o as_o may_v be_v do_v by_o the_o application_n of_o natural_a cause_n and_o remedy_n as_o that_o of_o vespasianus_n of_o who_o suetonius_n recount_v that_o he_o restore_v sight_n to_o a_o blind_a man_n and_o the_o use_n of_o his_o foot_n to_o a_o lame_a man_n but_o cornelius_n tacitus_n do_v acknowledge_v lib._n 4._o hist._n that_o the_o physician_n be_v consult_v do_v answer_v those_o disease_n be_v not_o incurable_a and_o tertullian_n in_o apologetico_fw-la cap._n 22._o say_v that_o both_o the_o disease_n and_o the_o cure_n be_v a_o work_n of_o the_o devil_n anti-christs_n miracle_n also_o will_v be_v such_o as_o as_o may_v be_v do_v by_o the_o course_n and_o concurrence_n of_o natural_a cause_n that_o miracle_n do_v upon_o man_n mind_n be_v great_a than_o any_o ●●res_n or_o change_v wrought_v upon_o the_o body_n 57_o be_v grant_v by_o our_o adversary_n and_o st._n bernard_n recount_v as_o one_o of_o the_o great_a miracle_n of_o st._n malac●ius_n that_o he_o convert_v a_o obstinate_a soul_n to_o recant_v his_o opinion_n against_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o sacrament_n and_o for_o the_o most_o remarkable_a miracle_n of_o st._n bernard_n himself_o it_o be_v record_v how_o with_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n in_o his_o hand_n he_o do_v so_o terrify_v william_n the_o proud_a duke_n of_o aquitain_n that_o he_o fall_v prostrate_a at_o his_o foot_n and_o he_o who_o the_o most_o powerful_a monarch_n of_o christendom_n can_v not_o rule_v submit_v himself_o to_o the_o disposal_n of_o a_o poor_a monk_n because_o he_o threaten_v he_o with_o that_o which_o in_o appearance_n seem_v to_o be_v and_o protestant_n hold_v to_o ●e_v no_o more_o in_o reality_n or_o in_o substance_n than_o a_o wafer_n cake_n these_o thing_n suppose_v as_o undeniable_a in_o philosophy_n and_o divinity_n it_o may_v be_v easy_o prove_v that_o every_o protestant_n do_v or_o at_o least_o may_v see_v true_a miracle_n in_o confirmation_n of_o our_o roman_a catholic_n ●aith_v for_o without_o question_n it_o be_v either_o a_o miracle_n of_o god_n or_o of_o the_o devil_n that_o all_o the_o roman_a catholic_n not_o only_o now_o but_o for_o so_o many_o age_n past_a shall_v contrary_a 〈◊〉_d the_o evidence_n of_o sense_n and_o to_o our_o natural_a inclination_n of_o judge_v according_a to_o that_o evidence_n adore_v for_o our_o saviour_n jesus_n christ_n that_o which_o in_o appearance_n be_v but_o a_o wafer_n cake_n or_o a_o cup_n of_o wine_n we_o be_v either_o abuse_v and_o seduce_v by_o satan_n or_o inspire_v and_o enable_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o contradict_v our_o sense_n which_o contradiction_n be_v in_o a_o matter_n so_o long_o and_o so_o much_o controvert_v in_o public_a school_n and_o general_a counsel_n and_o a_o thing_n whereupon_o depend_v our_o salvation_n we_o can_v not_o ●e_v presume_v if_o we_o err_v that_o we_o err_v for_o want_v of_o examine_v and_o compare_v the_o reason_n of_o both_o side_n catholic_n and_o protestant_n especial_o if_o we_o consider_v the_o number_n learning_n and_o integrity_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n examiner_n and_o the_o great_a difficulty_n which_o they_o as_o well_o as_o all_o other_o man_n find_v in_o believe_v or_o judge_v against_o the_o evidence_n of_o sense_n and_o in_o deny_v that_o to_o be_v bread_n or_o wine_n which_o do_v smell_v look_v taste_n feel_v and_o feed_v like_o bread_n and_o wine_n now_o if_o we_o prove_v that_o this_o marvellous_a and_o unanimous_a contradiction_n of_o our_o sense_n can_v not_o be_v a_o miracle_n of_o the_o devil_n protestant_n must_v grant_v it_o be_v a_o miracle_n of_o god_n and_o from_o thence_o may_v
conclude_v what_o censure_n themselves_o deserve_v for_o be_v obstinate_a against_o our_o doctrine_n and_o for_o run_v with_o the_o appearance_n of_o sense_n against_o the_o express_a word_n of_o scripture_n confirm_v by_o so_o supernatural_a and_o visible_a a_o miracle_n as_o our_o not_o condescend_v or_o assent_v to_o that_o evidence_n which_o we_o as_o man_n be_v natura_o incline_v to_o follow_v it_o be_v a_o undoubted_a maxim_n wherein_o both_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n agree_v that_o god_n only_o can_v work_v upon_o the_o soul_n while_o it_o be_v in_o the_o body_n immediate_o without_o the_o help_n of_o our_o sense_n or_o without_o make_v impression_n upon_o the_o organ_n thereof_o the_o devil_n can_v not_o suggest_v or_o convey_v heretical_a opinion_n into_o our_o mind_n otherwise_o then_o by_o so_o temper_v the_o object_n and_o tamper_n with_o our_o sense_n that_o the_o soul_n do_v wilful_o though_o unwary_o embrace_v deceitful_a appearance_n for_o real_a truth_n his_o whole_a power_n and_o art_n consist_v in_o humour_v the_o soul_n in_o its_o mistake_n of_o these_o sensual_a appearance_n and_o allurement_n make_v they_o to_o seem_v unquestionable_a evidence_n for_o it_o will_v quite_o destroy_v his_o drift_n and_o spoil_v his_o market_n if_o the_o soul_n do_v suspect_v a_o fallacy_n or_o at_o least_o reflect_v upon_o the_o vanity_n of_o sensual_a object_n and_o appearance_n wherefore_o he_o always_o inculcat_n that_o the_o best_a rule_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o to_o contradict_v or_o contemn_v upon_o any_o score_n whatsoever_o the_o experiment_n and_o appearance_n of_o sense_n even_o in_o paradise_n before_o man_n soul_n be_v wound_v and_o weaken_a he_o attemp_v and_o compass_v the_o fall_n of_o our_o first_o parent_n by_o a_o fallacy_n ground_v upon_o the_o evidence_n or_o appearance_n of_o their_o sense_n against_o god_n word_n and_o warning_n god_n tell_v they_o they_o shall_v die_v if_o they_o do_v eat_v of_o the_o forbid_a fruit_n but_o by_o the_o sight_n and_o taste_v of_o the_o forbid_a fruit_n the_o devil_n wrought_v so_o upon_o their_o soul_n that_o they_o believe_v he_o and_o their_o sense_n and_o prefer_v that_o fallacious_a evidence_n before_o god_n express_v word_n and_o if_o satan_n prevail_v with_o they_o in_o the_o state_n of_o innocency_n to_o judge_v of_o divin_fw-fr revelation_n rather_o by_o their_o own_o sense_n then_o by_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o god_n word_n how_o unlikely_a be_v it_o that_o after_o such_o success_n he_o will_v tempt_v their_o posterity_n in_o a_o contrary_a manner_n or_o that_o he_o will_v suggest_v to_o man_n that_o they_o ought_v not_o to_o believe_v their_o eye_n and_o sense_n in_o the_o controversy_n of_o transubstantiation_n but_o rather_o rely_v upon_o the_o literal_a sense_n of_o christ_n word_n this_o be_v my_o body_n see_v therefore_o it_o be_v a_o strange_a and_o singular_a miracle_n that_o so_o many_o pious_a and_o learned_a man_n of_o different_a temper_n interest_n time_n and_o nation_n after_o so_o frequent_a and_o serious_a debate_n in_o a_o matter_n whereupon_o depend_v their_o eternal_a happiness_n shall_v without_o any_o present_a or_o prudent_a advantage_n or_o allurement_n resolve_v to_o contradict_v their_o own_o sense_n and_o curb_v their_o nature_n and_o inclination_n of_o judge_v according_a to_o their_o sight_n taste_n etc._n etc._n and_o that_o this_o great_a miracle_n can_v not_o be_v attribute_v to_o the_o devil_n who_o suggestion_n and_o impression_n reach_v not_o the_o soul_n unless_o they_o be_v convey_v through_o our_o sense_n and_o ourselves_o consent_n to_o the_o sensual_a solicitation_n and_o appearance_n wherewith_o satan_n do_v assault_v and_o allure_v we_o it_o follow_v that_o our_o roman_a catholic_n resistance_n and_o resolution_n of_o not_o condescend_v to_o those_o solicitation_n and_o of_o not_o credit_v such_o appearance_n must_v be_v a_o miracle_n of_o god_n and_o the_o effect_n of_o his_o supernatural_a grace_n not_o of_o the_o devil_n or_o of_o any_o natural_a power_n of_o our_o own_o so_o that_o our_o adoration_n of_o the_o bless_a sacrament_n and_o our_o belief_n of_o transubstantiation_n which_o be_v the_o thing_n protestant_n most_o except_o against_o in_o the_o catholic_n religion_n if_o they_o reflect_v upon_o they_o will_v be_v find_v to_o be_v supernatural_a miracle_n and_o convince_a motive_n for_o their_o conversion_n to_o our_o roman_a catholic_n faith_n let_v protestant_n number_n also_o the_o particular_a doctrine_n wherein_o they_o differ_v from_o roman_a catholic_n and_o observe_v how_o our_o belief_n and_o practice_n in_o such_o particular_n go_v against_o sensual_a appearance_n and_o perverse_n inclination_n and_o they_o will_v find_v we_o have_v as_o many_o visible_a miracle_n as_o there_o be_v doctrinal_a and_o practical_a difference_n in_o our_o church_n from_o protestancy_n to_o these_o may_v be_v add_v the_o general_a sign_n or_o mark_n of_o the_o church_n as_o our_o unity_n in_o faith_n the_o continuance_n and_o universality_n of_o our_o doctrine_n our_o apostolical_a succession_n our_o conversion_n of_o nation_n to_o christianity_n etc._n etc._n no_o protestant_a can_v rationa_o deny_v that_o every_o one_o of_o these_o be_v a_o visible_a and_o supernatural_a miracle_n which_o can_v be_v as_o little_o attribute_v to_o human_a industry_n as_o to_o chance_v or_o fate_n for_o if_o they_o may_v how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o not_o one_o of_o these_o sign_n can_v or_o can_v ever_o be_v find_v in_o any_o other_o congregation_n of_o christian_n but_o we_o this_o much_o i_o think_v fit_a to_o say_v not_o to_o satisfy_v the_o curiosity_n but_o the_o conscience_n of_o they_o who_o desire_v to_o see_v any_o one_o undeniable_a miracle_n that_o favour_v popery_n and_o albeit_o any_o one_o true_a miracle_n do_v confirm_v the_o whole_a doctrine_n of_o our_o roman_a church_n yet_o i_o will_v set_v down_o more_o than_o one_o for_o confirmation_n of_o most_o particular_n wherein_o we_o differ_v from_o protestant_n and_o begin_v with_o what_o we_o have_v in_o hand_n concern_v transubstantiation_n and_o the_o adoration_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n which_o our_o adversary_n pretend_v to_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o idolatry_n for_o that_o ourselves_o confess_v the_o species_n or_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n do_v remain_v 29._o and_o they_o be_v creature_n by_o we_o adore_v together_o with_o christ._n our_o common_a and_o constant_a answer_n whereunto_o no_o reply_n can_v be_v give_v be_v that_o we_o adore_v the_o species_n no_o more_o when_o we_o adore_v christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n than_o the_o apostle_n and_o other_o who_o converse_v with_o he_o upon_o earth_n adore_v his_o cloak_n or_o clothes_n when_o they_o adore_v himself_o sect_n ii_o of_o true_a miracle_n relate_v in_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n by_o man_n of_o great_a authority_n in_o every_o age_n to_o confirm_v the_o particular_a mystery_n of_o our_o catholic_n faith_n and_o that_o sense_n of_o scripture_n wherein_o roman_a catholic_n differ_v from_o protestant_n there_o be_v not_o any_o thing_n so_o evident_a which_o be_v not_o question_v by_o obstinate_a and_o interest_v person_n the_o protestant_a laity_n in_o regard_n of_o their_o education_n be_v fix_v in_o the_o maintenance_n of_o protestancy_n the_o clergy_n be_v interest_v because_o it_o be_v their_o livelihood_n let_v catholic_n miracle_n be_v never_o so_o visible_a or_o credible_o report_v protestant_n look_v upon_o they_o as_o mistake_n and_o that_o can_v be_v for_o no_o other_o reason_n but_o because_o themselves_o be_v settle_v in_o a_o prejudice_n against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n the_o author_n that_o relate_v popish_a miracle_n be_v credit_v in_o all_o other_o matter_n and_o esteem_v ●udicious_a person_n but_o when_o they_o come_v to_o that_o point_n they_o must_v needs_o loose_a their_o wit_n or_o be_v judge_v jmpostor_n to_o avoid_v this_o cavil_v or_o confute_v the_o calumny_n i_o have_v fix_v upon_o author_n who_o wisdom_n and_o integrity_n have_v never_o hitherto_o be_v call_v in_o question_n even_o in_o point_n of_o doctrine_n and_o the_o sole_a denial_n of_o who_o testimony_n be_v hold_v to_o be_v a_o sufficient_a evidence_n of_o heresy_n or_o foolery_n in_o the_o person_n that_o contradict_v it_o and_o of_o weakness_n in_o the_o cause_n that_o can_v not_o be_v maintain_v without_o so_o unreasonable_a a_o contradiction_n and_o see_v they_o be_v credit_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n i_o hope_v they_o deserve_v credit_n in_o matter_n of_o fact_n of_o miracle_n relate_v by_o st._n chrysostom_n st._n gregory_n nazianzen_n st._n austin_n st_n nilus_n st._n cyprian_n the_o martyr_n st._n gregory_n the_o great_a st._n optatus_n and_o other_o in_o confirmation_n of_o transubstantiation_n adoration_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o sacrament_n the_o sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n communion_n under_o one_o kind_a prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a and_o purgatory_n a_o certain_a venerable_a old_a man_n say_v st._n chrysostom_n to_o
in_o england_n con●●der_v whether_o it_o be_v probable_a or_o possible_a that_o god_n will_v work_v 〈◊〉_d undeniable_a miracle_n against_o his_o own_o word_n and_o the_o true_a sense_n ●f_a scripture_n and_o whether_o it_o be_v not_o more_o likely_a that_o the_o ro●an_n catholic_n sense_n thereof_o so_o confirm_v be_v that_o which_o the_o ●oly_a ghost_n inspire_v and_o mean_v rather_o than_o the_o sense_n of_o lu●●er_n calvin_n cranmer_n or_o of_o the_o parliament_n a_fw-mi 3._o &_o 4._o ed._n 6._o ●hen_o all_o jmage_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o saint_n be_v command_v by_o 〈◊〉_d express_a statute_n to_o be_v pull_v down_o provide_v always_o that_o the_o ●ct_n or_o any_o thing_n therein_o contain_v shall_v not_o extend_v to_o any_o ●mage_n or_o picture_n set_v or_o grave_v upon_o any_o tomb_n in_o any_o church_n chapel_n or_o churchyard_n only_o for_o a_o monument_n of_o any_o king_n ●rince_n nobleman_n or_o other_o dead_a person_n which_o have_v not_o be_v common_o repute_v and_o take_v for_o a_o saint_n so_o that_o by_o the_o religion_n and_o law_n of_o england_n there_o must_v not_o be_v any_o sign_n or_o monument_n of_o sanctity_n leave_v or_o permit_v in_o church_n as_o if_o god_n ●id_v intend_v profane_a person_n shall_v have_v great_a respect_n show_v to_o they_o in_o his_o own_o house_n than_o his_o own_o servant_n habere_fw-la and_o that_o their_o have_v be_v eminent_a in_o his_o divin_n service_n and_o his_o testify_v the_o same_o by_o evident_a miracle_n be_v a_o sufficient_a cause_n to_o break_v their_o monument_n and_o blot_v their_o memory_n out_o of_o the_o heart_n of_o christian_n the_o protestant_a clergy_n delude_v their_o floch_n with_o tell_v they_o that_o civil_a worship_n may_v be_v give_v to_o statue_n and_o jmage_n of_o king_n prince_n and_o nobleman_n religious_a worship_n may_v not_o be_v give_v to_o ●ny_v creature_n however_o so_o holy_a it_o be_v peculiar_a to_o god_n but_o christ_n teach_v contrary_a doctrine_n and_o say_v that_o whosoever_o receive_v a_o prophet_n as_o a_o prophet_n shall_v have_v the_o reward_n of_o a_o prophet_n if_o by_o religious_a worship_n they_o mean_v latria_n or_o that_o supreme_a which_o be_v due_a to_o god_n alone_o we_o allow_v their_o doctrine_n but_o if_o they_o take_v it_o ●or_a that_o reverence_n which_o be_v due_a to_o any_o thing_n that_o be_v holy_a by_o sanctification_n spiritual_a grace_n character_n or_o application_n to_o the_o service_n of_o god_n we_o deny_v it_o what_o do_v they_o think_v not_o only_o of_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n who_o the_o faithful_a religious_o worship_v and_o adore_v in_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n but_o of_o inanimat_n thing_n as_o the_o temple_n the_o tabernacle_n the_o arck_n the_o propitiatory_a the_o cherubin_n the_o altar_n the_o bread_n of_o proposition_n etc._n etc._n nay_o what_o do_v they_o think_v of_o themselves_o do_v not_o every_o protestant_a bishop_n teach_v and_o inculcat_fw-la to_o the_o people_n that_o he_o be_v their_o spiritual_a father_n and_o upon_o that_o score_n expect_v they_o shall_v kneel_v down_o to_o he_o and_o ask_v his_o blessing_n injuriam_fw-la do_v they_o not_o commend_v as_o religious_a and_o devout_a soul_n such_o as_o give_v they_o this_o respect_n be_v not_o this_o a_o religious_a worship_n there_o be_v not_o any_o of_o their_o bishop_n can_v pretend_v that_o so_o much_o ceremony_n be_v a_o civility_n due_a to_o their_o birth_n but_o they_o attribute_v it_o to_o their_o spiritual_a dignity_n and_o to_o their_o suppose_a character_n of_o episcopacy_n we_o desire_v no_o other_o kind_a of_o worship_n be_v give_v to_o our_o catholic_n canonize_a bishop_n or_o to_o image_n then_o that_o which_o the_o protestant_a bishop_n claim_v as_o due_a to_o themselves_o and_o to_o their_o picture_n and_o yet_o these_o man_n will_v needs_o have_v popery_n to_o be_v idolatry_n because_o we_o worship_v real_a sanctity_n with_o the_o same_o ceremony_n and_o respect_n that_o they_o exact_v for_o mistake_a episcopacy_n sect_n v._o miracle_n relate_v by_o st_n austin_n st._n ambrose_n st_n gregory_n nazianzen_n st._n epiphanius_n st._n chrysostom_n st._n hierom_n st._n optatus_n sy_n bede_n sy_n bernard_n st._n anselm_n and_o other_o in_o confirmation_n of_o pray_v to_o saint_n and_o worship_v of_o their_o relic_n and_o of_o the_o virtue_n of_o holy_a water_n of_o the_o sacrament_n of_o confirmation_n confession_n and_o extreme_a unction_n st_n hierom_n say_v the_o heretic_n eunomius_n be_v the_o first_o that_o impugn_a the_o worship_v of_o saint_n relic_n vigilant_a who_o error_n vigilantius_n follow_v and_o add_v a_o other_o against_o pray_v to_o saint_n fin_n how_o ancient_a the_o worship_n of_o saint_n relic_n be_v we_o see_v by_o the_o epistle_n of_o the_o church_n of_o smirna_n concern_v the_o martyrdom_n of_o st._n polycarpus_n st._n john_n evangelist_n disciple_n who_o reliks_n the_o christian_n gather_v even_o after_o his_o body_n be_v burn_v with_o most_o fervent_a devotion_n st._n ambrose_n give_v many_o reason_n why_o relic_n ought_v to_o be_v honour_v if_o you_o ask_v i_o say_v he_o what_o do_v you_o honour_n in_o flesh_n consume_v and_o turn_v into_o dust_n i_o honour_n in_o the_o martyr_n flesh_n the_o scar_n that_o he_o receive_v for_o christ_n i_o honour_v the_o memory_n of_o one_o that_o live_v by_o the_o perpetuity_n of_o his_o virtue_n i_o honour_v ash_n sanctify_v by_o the_o confession_n of_o our_o lord_n devotion_n i_o honour_v in_o ash_n the_o seed_n of_o eternity_n i_o honour_v the_o body_n that_o teach_v i_o to_o love_n god_n and_o to_o contemn_v death_n for_o his_o sake_n and_o why_o shall_v not_o christian_n honour_v that_o body_n which_o the_o devil_n fear_v etc._n etc._n finaly_n i_o honour_v a_o body_n that_o honour_a christ_n in_o th●_n sword_n and_o be_v to_o reign_v with_o he_o in_o heaven_n thus_o st._n ambrose_n now_o to_o our_o miracle_n st._n austin_n de_fw-la civit._fw-la dei_fw-la l._n 22._o c._n 8._o tell_v how_o that_o in_o the_o presence_n of_o he_o and_o other_o a_o devout_a woman_n call_v palladia_n who_o be_v sore_o disease_v and_o repair_v for_o her_o health_n to_o the_o monument_n of_o st._n stephen_n as_o soon_o as_o she_o pray_v to_o the_o saint_n sana_fw-la surrexit_fw-la she_o receive_v health_n and_o in_o the_o same_o chapter_n a_o little_a before_o he_o relate_v the_o like_a miraculous_a example_n of_o one_o florentius_n of_o hippo_n and_o of_o eucharius_n a_o priest_n of_o spain_n as_o also_o of_o ten_o infirm_a person_n in_o his_o presence_n miraculous_o cure_v and_o sundry_a dead_a restore_v to_o life_n in_o the_o nine_o book_n of_o his_o confession_n cap._n 7._o he_o tell_v how_o the_o dead_a body_n of_o st._n gervasius_n and_o protasius_n be_v after_o many_o year_n find_v uncorrupted_a and_o that_o at_o their_o dead_a body_n a_o blind_a man_n receive_v his_o sight_n a_o miracle_n say_v st._n austin_n do_v at_o milan_n where_o the_o say_v body_n lay_v when_o i_o be_v there_o a_o great_a number_n of_o people_n be_v witness_n thereof_o st._n hierom_n recount_v in_o the_o life_n of_o st._n hilarion_n how_o his_o dead_a body_n be_v after_o ten_o month_n find_v uncorrupted_a yield_v forth_o a_o fragrant_a smell_n and_o st._n bede_n testify_v the_o same_o of_o st._n cuthbert_n l._n 4._o hist._n cap._n 30._o st._n ambrose_n have_v have_v a_o revelation_n where_o the_o body_n of_o the_o martyr_n st._n gervasius_n and_o protasius_n lie_v god_n place_v they_o with_o great_a solemnity_n in_o the_o church_n and_o they_o wrought_v many_o miracle_n which_o he_o recount_v among_o other_o the_o devil_n be_v torment_v by_o the_o holy_a relic_n and_o be_v force_v to_o confess_v that_o their_o torment_n proceed_v from_o the_o intercession_n of_o the_o saint_n but_o the_o arrian_n vex_v to_o see_v the_o catholic_n faith_n confirm_v by_o such_o miracle_n endeavour_v to_o discredit_v they_o by_o say_v the_o devil_n be_v not_o rea_o torment_v and_o that_o these_o be_v no_o true_a miracle_n as_o protestant_n say_v now_o of_o our_o exorcism_n for_o which_o folly_n and_o obstinacy_n they_o be_v reprehend_v by_o st._n ambrose_n as_o vigilantius_n for_o the_o same_o reason_n be_v censure_v by_o st._n hierom._n in_o like_a manner_n ought_v the_o centurist_n and_o other_o protestant_n be_v condemn_v for_o discredit_v the_o miracle_n which_o st._n chrysostom_n theodoret_n and_o rufinus_n relate_v of_o st._n babylas_n which_o be_v that_o after_o bring_v of_o the_o body_n of_o the_o holy_a martyr_n into_o the_o temple_n of_o a_o idol_n the_o jdol_n cease_v to_o speak_v and_o therefore_o julian_n the_o apostata_fw-la command_v the_o body_n shall_v be_v remove_v from_o thence_o the_o centurist_n answer_v that_o the_o devil_n be_v neither_o silence_v nor_o fright_v by_o the_o saint_n and_o presence_n of_o his_o relic_n but_o feign_v to_o be_v overcome_v to_o the_o end_n that_o superstition_n may_v encrea_n st._n
the_o example_n of_o other_o protestant_a church_n whence_o follow_v continual_a discontent_n and_o design_n of_o the_o generality_n of_o these_o protestant_a nation_n against_o their_o prelatic_a clergy_n and_o the_o little_a esteem_n and_o affection_n there_o be_v for_o the_o same_o clergy_n among_o the_o reform_a church_n abroad_o how_o unsafe_a it_o be_v for_o the_o prince_n and_o government_n to_o establish_v by_o law_n a_o religion_n and_o clergy_n so_o genera_o hate_v and_o that_o acknowledge_v itself_o to_o be_v fallible_a in_o doctrine_n and_o therefore_o for_o all_o they_o know_v lead_v their_o flock_n to_o eternal_a damnation_n law_n enact_v to_o favour_n religion_n aught_o to_o suppose_v not_o pretend_v to_o make_v the_o religion_n reasonable_a reason_n be_v the_o ground_n of_o human_a law_n but_o human_a law_n can_v not_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o religion_n how_o dangerous_a it_o be_v to_o press_v too_o much_o the_o act_n of_o uniformity_n against_o so_o great_a and_o zealous_a a_o multitude_n as_o the_o sectary_n be_v their_o error_n ought_v to_o be_v confute_v with_o reason_n not_o rigour_n the_o prelatic_a clergy_n who_o spiritual_a censure_n and_o authority_n ought_v to_o quash_n all_o dissension_n do_v cause_v the_o mischief_n and_o engage_v the_o state_n in_o perpetual_a trouble_n for_o maintain_v by_o force_n of_o law_n the_o improbability_n of_o their_o character_n and_o jurisdiction_n against_o the_o evidence_n of_o reason_n subsect_v i._n the_o prelatic_a character_n and_o religion_n be_v so_o incredible_a that_o few_o serious_a man_n in_o their_o judgement_n continue_v any_o long_a time_n prelaticks_n by_o pretend_v a_o mean_a and_o moderation_n between_o papist_n and_o presbiterian_o the_o prelaticks_n fall_v into_o manifest_a contradiction_n in_o defend_v their_o own_o character_n doctrine_n and_o discipline_n how_o learned_a protestant_n be_v force_v to_o confess_v that_o the_o prince_n may_v force_v his_o subject_n by_o law_n to_o his_o protestant_a persuasion_n and_o that_o every_o protestant_a subject_n notwithstanding_o the_o prince_n his_o prerogative_n have_v a_o private_a authority_n to_o judge_v of_o the_o prince_n his_o religion_n and_o be_v bind_v to_o stick_v to_o his_o own_o contrary_a judgement_n what_o great_a confusion_n this_o must_v occasion_n it_o be_v the_o nature_n of_o all_o religion_n that_o give_v private_a man_n liberty_n to_o judge_v of_o religious_a controversy_n to_o cause_v such_o disorder_n how_o this_o inconvenience_n be_v prevent_v in_o the_o roman_n catholic_n one_o of_o the_o difference_n between_o it_o and_o the_o protestant_n be_v that_o when_o protestant_n rebel_n they_o do_v not_o violat_a the_o principle_n of_o protestancy_n which_o make_v every_o man_n supreme_a in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o by_o consequence_n of_o state_n when_o catholic_n rebel_n they_o go_v against_o their_o principle_n that_o give_v no_o such_o supremacy_n or_o liberty_n in_o these_o last_o one_o hundred_o year_n there_o have_v be_v more_o rebellion_n upon_o the_o score_n of_o protestancy_n then_o have_v be_v since_o christ_n time_n upon_o the_o score_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n in_o what_o sense_n the_o roman_n catholic_n be_v a_o grow_a religion_n whether_o it_o be_v policy_n to_o persecute_v a_o religion_n that_o increase_v against_o the_o rigour_n of_o the_o law_n and_o to_o promote_v a_o religion_n that_o do_v not_o increase_v with_o all_o the_o help_n of_o law_n and_o favour_n of_o the_o prince_n the_o sanguinary_a and_o penal_a statute_n be_v think_v to_o be_v so_o unjust_a even_o by_o protestant_n that_o no_o honest_a and_o sober_a man_n think_v they_o fit_a to_o be_v put_v in_o execution_n whether_o it_o be_v policy_n to_o continue_v such_o statute_n all_o seditious_a person_n begin_v their_o design_n against_o the_o government_n with_o press_v the_o execution_n of_o the_o statute_n and_o sometime_o thereby_o make_v the_o zealous_a and_o giddy_a multitude_n rebel_n whether_o it_o be_v not_o piety_n and_o policy_n to_o repeal_v statute_n that_o if_o put_v in_o execution_n make_v the_o nation_n and_o government_n infamous_a if_o not_o put_v in_o execution_n may_v occasion_v rebellion_n by_o reason_n of_o a_o indiscreet_a zeal_n in_o the_o giddy_a multitude_n beside_o their_o be_v enact_v to_o suppress_v the_o principle_n and_o destroy_v the_o person_n of_o the_o catholic_n party_n which_o maintain_v the_o stevards_o right_a to_o the_o crown_n aught_o to_o facilitat_fw-la the_o repeal_n subsect_v ii_o the_o sanguinary_a and_o penal_a statute_n of_o england_n against_o catholic_n can_v not_o be_v justify_v by_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o inquisition_n or_o by_o law_n and_o edict_n of_o christian_a king_n and_o emperor_n against_o heretic_n the_o first_o english_a protestant_n acknowledge_v themselves_o to_o be_v heretic_n when_o they_o petition_v to_o the_o parliament_n 1._o ed._n 6._o for_o a_o repeal_n of_o all_o ancient_a statute_n against_o heretic_n not_o dare_v to_o preach_v and_o profess_v their_o reform_a doctrine_n until_o the_o parliament_n have_v condescend_v to_o their_o petition_n queen_n elizabeth_n reformation_n confirm_v by_o sanguinary_a statute_n diametrica_o opposite_a to_o primitive_a christianity_n and_o therefore_o very_o strange_a that_o man_n so_o know_v as_o the_o english_a nobility_n and_o gentry_n shall_v continue_v they_o or_o that_o person_n so_o pious_a loyal_a and_o well_o breed_v shall_v not_o either_o out_o of_o christian_a charity_n to_o catholic_n or_o out_o of_o a_o dutiful_a civility_n to_o the_o royal_a family_n that_o now_o reign_v repeal_v law_n enact_v by_o q._n elizabeth_n for_o ruin_n of_o the_o stevards_n party_n and_o for_o exclude_v themselves_o from_o the_o crown_n the_o three_o part_n contain_v the_o conscience_n and_o conveniency_n of_o tolerate_v the_o roman_n catholic_n religion_n by_o act_n of_o parliament_n prove_v by_o the_o little_a conscience_n of_o the_o protestant_a clergy_n in_o maintain_v protestancy_n with_o fraud_n and_o falsification_n and_o by_o the_o great_a inconvenience_n this_o monarchy_n suffer_v by_o press_v the_o prelatic_a and_o protestant_n religion_n upon_o tender_a conscience_n sect_n i._n demonstrate_v that_o either_o the_o learned_a protestant_n or_o the_o roman_n catholic_n clergy_n be_v cheat_n prove_v by_o the_o impossibility_n of_o conceal_v the_o truth_n of_o christianity_n and_o of_o the_o true_a church_n otherwise_o then_o by_o the_o fraud_n and_o falsification_n of_o either_o clergy_n so_o manifest_a be_v the_o sign_n of_o the_o catholic_n church_n and_o so_o particular_o mention_v in_o scripture_n and_o as_o one_o of_o the_o two_o clergye_n be_v cheat_n so_o either_o the_o catholic_n or_o protestant_n laity_n be_v damnable_o careless_a in_o matter_n of_o salvation_n reason_n why_o the_o catholic_n laity_n can_v not_o be_v think_v careless_a the_o protestant_a may_n how_o easy_o the_o truth_n may_v be_v know_v and_o how_o the_o protestant_a laity_n may_v be_v considerable_o ease_v from_o extraordinary_a tax_n by_o inform_v themselves_o of_o the_o truth_n of_o religion_n the_o impudence_n and_o impiety_n wherewith_o bp._n jevell_n and_o the_o first_o prelatic_a clergy_n impose_v protestancy_n upon_o this_o nation_n to_o favour_v q._n elizab_n pretension_n and_o to_o raise_v themselves_o from_o pedantry_n to_o peerage_n prove_v by_o jevell_n challenge_n and_o sermon_n at_o paul_n cross_n and_o by_o he_o and_o the_o prelatic_a clergye_n apology_n for_o their_o church_n of_o england_n pretend_v that_o the_o catholic_n church_n for_o the_o first_o 600._o year_n be_v protestant_a how_o this_o imposture_n be_v confute_v by_o the_o catholic_n writer_n and_o the_o protestant_a writer_n force_v to_o acknowledge_v their_o own_o error_n how_o the_o same_o imposture_n be_v again_o maintain_v by_o succeed_a prelaticks_n and_o how_o unsuccessful_o how_o tailor_n revive_v now_o again_o the_o same_o shameful_a imposture_n and_o with_o how_o great_a infamy_n to_o his_o person_n and_o discredit_v to_o his_o cause_n the_o protestant_a laity_n can_v not_o without_o commit_v a_o damnable_a sin_n give_v any_o credit_n to_o their_o clergy_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n after_o so_o many_o and_o so_o manifest_a discovery_n of_o the_o fraud_n and_o falsification_n whereby_o alone_a they_o defend_v protestancy_n how_o a_o conference_n and_o trial_n about_o this_o matter_n can_v not_o be_v conscientious_o deny_v nor_o the_o denial_n stand_v with_o good_a policy_n sect_n ii_o the_o same_o further_o demonstrate_v and_o that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o reason_n to_o suspect_v the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o roman_n catholic_n clergy_n subect_a i._n and_o ii_o whether_o it_o be_v charity_n to_o treat_v cheat_n with_o ceremony_n when_o they_o be_v convict_v of_o damn_v soul_n by_o fraud_n and_o wilful_a falsification_n and_o whether_o the_o first_o reformer_n of_o the_o english_a church_n cranmer_n and_o his_o comrade_n ought_v not_o to_o be_v censure_v according_o the_o fraud_n and_o wilful_a falsification_n hypocrisy_n incontinency_n impiety_n and_o atheism_n of_o the_o prelalatick_a protestant_a clergy_n in_o k._n edward_n